Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n divine_a faith_n infallible_a 2,020 5 9.1150 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A01005 The Church conquerant ouer humane wit. Or The Churches authority demonstrated by M. VVilliam Chillingvvorth (the proctour for vvit against her) his perpetual contradictions, in his booke entituled, The religion of Protestants a safe vvay to saluation Floyd, John, 1572-1649.; Lacey, William, 1584-1673, attributed name. 1638 (1638) STC 11110; ESTC S102366 121,226 198

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

upon_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 6._o n._n 59_o we_o must_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o proof_n then_o of_o the_o thing_n prove_v thereby_o otherwise_o it_o it_o no_o proof_n that_o be_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o proof_n must_v be_v better_o know_v and_o more_o evident_a to_o we_o than_o the_o thing_n prove_v but_o cap._n 2._o n._n 8._o you_o say_v the_o scripture_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v credible_a for_o itself_o ergo_fw-la the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n be_v sure_a that_o be_v better_o know_v and_o more_o evident_a to_o we_o then_o the_o scripture_n yea_o further_o tradition_n be_v a_o rock_n of_o our_o belief_n a_o principle_n so_o evident_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a proof_n this_o i_o prove_v by_o this_o argument_n ground_v upon_o your_o say_n that_o which_o be_v credible_a for_o itself_o and_o fit_a to_o be_v rest_v on_o must_v be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_o evidence_n this_o you_o suppose_v cap._n 2._o n._n 45._o lin_v 8._o where_o you_o say_v i_o will_v never_o cease_v multiply_v demand_n upon_o demand_n until_o you_o settle_v i_o upon_o a_o rock_n i_o mean_v give_v i_o such_o a_o answer_n who_o truth_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a evidence_n but_o cap._n 2._o n._n 25_o lin_v 5._o you_o say_v the_o credibility_n of_o universal_a tradition_n be_v a_o thing_n credible_a of_o itself_o and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o be_v rest_v on_o ergo_fw-la the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n universal_a or_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o rock_n a_o rule_n a_o reason_n of_o believe_v so_o evident_a and_o credible_a of_o itself_o as_o it_o need_v no_o further_a evidence_n the_o three_o conviction_n 14._o we_o have_v convince_v your_o error_n by_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o ground_n thereof_o now_o i_o prove_v the_o absolute_a infallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n by_o the_o proper_a cause_n show_v why_o it_o be_v so_o and_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v so_o ground_v my_o proof_n on_o truth_n so_o clear_a as_o they_o be_v by_o you_o grant_v cap._n 6._o n._n 9_o lin_v 2._o you_o say_v if_o we_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v with_o certainty_n i_o mean_v a_o moral_a certainty_n thing_n no_o way_n represent_v as_o infallible_a and_o certain_a i_o mean_v moral_o a_o unreasonable_a obedience_n be_v require_v of_o us._n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v it_o be_v we_o require_v to_o believe_v as_o absolute_o certain_a that_o which_o be_v no_o way_n represent_v to_o we_o as_o absolute_o certain_a thus_o you_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v represent_v unto_o you_o as_o absolute_o infallible_a not_o only_o as_o moral_o but_o as_o metaphysical_o and_o mathematical_o certain_a in_o themselves_o this_o i_o prove_v by_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 6._o n._n 3._o lin_v 6._o i_o do_v hearty_o acknowledge_v and_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v in_o themselves_o truth_n as_o certain_a as_o the_o very_a common_a principle_n of_o geometry_n and_o metaphysic_n but_o that_o there_o be_v require_v of_o we_o a_o knowledge_n of_o they_o &_o a_o adherence_n to_o they_o as_o certain_a as_o that_o of_o sense_n or_o science_n that_o such_o a_o certainty_n be_v require_v of_o we_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n this_o i_o have_v show_v to_o be_v a_o error_n etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o here_o you_o profess_v that_o you_o do_v hearty_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v in_o themselves_o truth_n altogether_o infallible_a even_o metaphysical_o certain_a but_o you_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o hearty_o as_o absolute_o certain_a truth_n be_v they_o no_o way_n represent_v to_o your_o understanding_n as_o absolute_o &_o metaphysical_o certain_a what_o more_o clear_a than_o this_o for_o how_o can_v you_o apprehend_v that_o truth_n by_o firm_a &_o hearty_a faith_n which_o you_o do_v not_o apprehend_v at_o all_o or_o how_o can_v you_o apprehend_v that_o truth_n at_o all_o with_o be_v no_o way_n represent_v to_o your_o understanding_n ergo_fw-la the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v by_o the_o reason_n and_o motive_n of_o christian_a tradition_n represent_v to_o your_o understanding_n as_o truth_n most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o themselves_o how_o then_o be_v you_o not_o bind_v to_o believe_v they_o as_o truth_n absolute_o and_o metaphysical_o certain_a in_o themselves_o with_o a_o hearty_a adherence_n to_o they_o as_o certain_a as_o that_o of_o sense_n and_o science_n the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v represent_v to_o you_o as_o moral_o certain_a you_o be_v bind_v as_o our_o confess_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v they_o with_o moral_a assurance_n ergo_fw-la if_o they_o be_v represent_v to_o your_o understanding_n as_o truth_n absolute_o certain_a you_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o with_o absolute_a certainty_n equal_a to_o the_o certainty_n of_o mathematical_a and_o metaphysical_a science_n but_o they_o be_v so_o represent_v to_o your_o understanding_n and_o you_o hearty_o apprehend_v they_o as_o absolute_o infallible_a in_o themselves_o the_o four_o conviction_n 15._o i_o convince_v the_o absolute_a infallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n by_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 4._o n._n 11._o lin_v 20._o which_o of_o we_o ever_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o damnable_a either_o to_o deny_v or_o to_o so_o much_o as_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n whereof_o we_o either_o know_v or_o believe_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v it_o thus_o you_o i_o do_v not_o know_v of_o what_o sect_n you_o be_v and_o so_o i_o not_o say_v which_o of_o you_o but_o i_o can_v say_v that_o you_o of_o what_o sect_n soever_o you_o be_v have_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o damnable_a for_o man_n not_o to_o doubt_v of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v for_o you_o accuse_v catholic_n as_o blind_a as_o perverse_a enemy_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o many_o the_o like_a crime_n and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 72._o lin_v 15._o my_o own_o experience_n assure_v i_o that_o in_o this_o imputation_n i_o do_v you_o no_o injury_n but_o it_o be_v very_o apparent_a to_o all_o man_n by_o your_o rank_v doubt_v of_o any_o part_n of_o your_o doctrine_n among_o mortal_a sin_n here_o you_o reprehend_v our_o doctrine_n that_o to_o doubt_v deliberate_o of_o the_o doctrine_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n that_o be_v damnable_a for_o i_o hope_v your_o own_o experience_n assure_v you_o that_o we_o believe_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o every_o part_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a with_o what_o reason_n and_o congruence_n then_o can_v you_o reprehend_v we_o for_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n to_o doubt_v of_o any_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n which_o we_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n especial_o see_v you_o say_v cap._n 2._o n._n 122._o lin_v 12._o that_o if_o you_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o devil_n though_o false_o that_o it_o be_v divine_a revelation_n you_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o disbelieve_v it_o under_o pain_n of_o formal_a heresy_n but_o to_o our_o purpose_n we_o will_v take_v of_o your_o contradiction_n that_o part_n which_o be_v manifest_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o doctrine_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o then_o i_o dispute_v thus_o there_o can_v be_v no_o more_o certain_a nor_o strong_a adherence_n to_o any_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o be_v so_o firm_a and_o undoubted_a as_o the_o believer_n esteem_v it_o damnable_a and_o a_o heinous_a crime_n so_o much_o as_o to_o doubt_v thereof_o but_o this_o adherence_n to_o christian_a doctrine_n you_o require_v as_o necessary_a damn_v all_o those_o that_o admit_v any_o voluntary_a doubt_n of_o the_o verity_n thereof_o ergo_fw-la a_o adherence_n to_o christian_a doctrine_n most_o certain_a equal_a to_o that_o man_n give_v to_o the_o principle_n of_o metaphysicke_n be_v require_v of_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n yea_o strong_a adherence_n see_v a_o christian_n be_v ready_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o deny_v the_o principle_n of_o metaphysicke_n rather_o than_o doubt_v of_o christian_a doctrine_n propose_v to_o he_o as_o god_n word_n by_o perpetual_a christian_a tradition_n final_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v bind_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n never_o to_o doubt_v of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o represent_v unto_o they_o as_o undoubted_o and_o absolute_o certain_a it_o be_v a_o burden_n intolerable_a to_o maintain_v a_o thing_n without_o any_o stagger_a and_o doubt_v which_o be_v propose_v only_o as_o
impossible_a to_o my_o reason_n therefore_o they_o be_v impossible_a aught_o to_o yield_v to_o this_o reason_n god_n say_v these_o mystery_n be_v possible_a and_o certain_o true_a ergo_fw-la they_o be_v possible_a and_o certain_o true_a you_o will_v say_v that_o though_o this_o consequence_n be_v most_o certain_a this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v most_o true_a yet_o you_o can_v be_v so_o certain_a that_o this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o you_o be_v of_o that_o which_o you_o see_v with_o your_o eye_n but_o this_o be_v refute_v by_o what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v prove_v by_o tradition_n which_o be_v as_o certain_a and_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n and_o evident_o true_a and_o credible_a of_o itself_o ergo_fw-la your_o belief_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v also_o resolve_v into_o this_o one_o reason_n unto_o which_o all_o other_o must_v submit_v and_o yield_v themselves_o humble_o subject_a god_n say_v that_o these_o book_n be_v his_o word_n and_o infallible_a truth_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o these_o book_n be_v his_o word_n &_o infallible_a truth_n so_o that_o christian_a resolution_n of_o faith_n even_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n rest_v final_o upon_o a_o reason_n unto_o which_o all_o human_a reason_n and_o understanding_n ought_v to_o submit_v and_o captivate_v itself_o you_o see_v how_o by_o your_o contradict_a yourself_o your_o error_n be_v over_o throw_v and_o true_a christianity_n establish_v the_o nine_o conviction_n 23._o 14._o lond._n edition_n pag._n 340._o lin_v 14._o pag._n 357._o lin_v 3._o cap._n 6._o n._n 28._o thus_o you_o write_v i_o certaein_o know_v that_o i_o do_v believe_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o very_o as_o that_o it_o be_v now_o day_n that_o i_o see_v the_o light_n that_o i_o be_o now_o write_v and_o i_o believe_v it_o upon_o this_o motive_n because_o i_o conceive_v it_o sufficient_o abundant_o superabundant_o prove_v to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o i_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o any_o succession_n of_o man_n that_o have_v always_o believe_v it_o without_o any_o mixture_n of_o error_n nay_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o succession_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o find_v any_o weakness_n in_o my_o faith_n but_o be_o so_o full_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o that_o though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v gainsay_a it_o or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o i_o persuade_v myself_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v thus_o you_o many_o way_n establish_v the_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o direct_a term_n contradict_v what_o elsewhere_o you_o must_v earnest_o affirm_v 24._o first_o you_o overthrow_n what_o you_o else_o where_o 3._o where_o pag._n 325._o n._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o that_o of_o sense_n for_o now_o you_o say_v that_o you_o certain_o know_v and_o that_o you_o be_v full_o assure_v that_o you_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o very_o as_o that_o now_o it_o be_v day_n as_o that_o you_o see_v the_o light_n as_o that_o when_o you_o write_v this_o you_o be_v write_v which_o be_v most_o assure_a certainty_n of_o sense_n for_o you_o say_v you_o be_v full_o assure_v that_o without_o depend_v on_o succession_n you_o believe_v not_o that_o which_o you_o think_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o every_o heretic_n do_v so_o but_o the_o true_a gospel_n consequent_o you_o be_v as_o sure_a that_o what_o you_o believe_v be_v the_o true_a gospel_n as_o you_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v light_v which_o you_o see_v at_o noonday_n as_o you_o be_v sure_a you_o write_v when_o you_o write_v and_o so_o you_o profess_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o your_o faith_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o great_a certainty_n which_o can_v be_v have_v by_o sense_n if_o you_o say_v you_o speak_v this_o not_o of_o ordinary_a christian_a faith_n which_o be_v rational_a &_o ground_v on_o reason_n but_o of_o special_a faith_n which_o you_o have_v from_o god_n infuse_v into_o your_o understanding_n in_o reward_n of_o your_o holy_a life_n i_o answer_v this_o can_v be_v so_o because_o you_o speak_v express_o of_o your_o faith_n which_o stand_v v._o upon_o the_o proof_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n and_o of_o that_o assent_n which_o you_o conceive_v because_o prove_v unto_o you_o abundant_o by_o the_o say_a reason_n which_o be_v ordinary_a christian_a faith_n and_o so_o you_o say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o any_o man_n may_v believe_v the_o foresay_a truth_n upon_o the_o foresay_a motive_n 24._o second_o here_o you_o affirm_v that_o christian_a religion_n or_o the_o gospel_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n sufficient_o abundant_o superabundant_o to_o bear_v the_o weight_n of_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o full_o assure_v faith_n wherein_o there_o be_v not_o any_o weakness_n by_o which_o you_o overthrow_v what_o you_o say_v elsewhere_o 36._o elsewhere_o pag._n 36._o that_o christian_a faith_n stand_v upon_o two_o leg_n upon_o two_o pillar_n the_o one_o that_o whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v be_v true_a which_o be_v most_o strong_a firm_a immovable_a the_o second_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v reveal_v of_o god_n which_o pillar_n you_o say_v be_v weak_a infirm_a and_o instable_n 154._o instable_n pag._n 112._o ●_o 154._o moralty_n certain_a but_o not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o weight_n of_o a_o absolute_a certain_a &_o infallible_a essent_fw-la free_a from_o all_o weakness_n 25._o three_o you_o say_v that_o faith_n build_v upon_o the_o foresaid_a motive_n be_v so_o firm_a and_o so_o strong_a so_o assure_v as_o you_o shall_v not_o as_o you_o think_v be_v move_v though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v gainsay_v it_o which_o do_v manifest_o contradict_v and_o destroy_v what_o you_o so_o often_o contend_v that_o the_o assent_v build_v upon_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n can_v be_v absolute_o certain_a no_o not_o though_o it_o be_v infuse_v into_o the_o understanding_n from_o god_n what_o you_o say_v of_o yourself_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v gainsay_v it_o how_o stubborn_a and_o pertinacious_a in_o error_n you_o may_v be_v against_o the_o light_n of_o your_o conscience_n i_o do_v not_o know_v but_o if_o your_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o certain_a and_o infallible_a if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a probable_a seem_a or_o a_o moral_a certainty_n in_o this_o case_n that_o you_o can_v stand_v against_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n prudent_o and_o according_a to_o the_o right_n dictamen_fw-la of_o conscience_n this_o i_o will_v believe_v if_o you_o can_v make_v i_o believe_v that_o a_o shilling-worth_n be_v as_o much_o as_o a_o angell-worth_n otherwise_o what_o great_a folly_n then_o for_o a_o mere_a mortal_a man_n of_o so_o weak_a memory_n and_o miserable_a discourse_n as_o he_o can_v write_v three_o page_n together_o in_o good_a sense_n without_o contradict_v himself_o to_o prefer_v his_o private_a seem_n his_o human_a fallible_a certainty_n his_o moral_a probability_n that_o this_o be_v god_n word_n before_o the_o word_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o all_o the_o argument_n he_o can_v bring_v against_o it_o 26._o i_o conclude_v with_o this_o demonstration_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n god_n command_v all_o christian_n and_o require_v of_o they_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o stand_v constant_a in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o against_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n that_o shall_v euangelize_n to_o the_o contrary_a as_o you_o suppose_v true_o this_o be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n 1.8_o gal._n 1.8_o but_o except_o god_n do_v infuse_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o true_a believe_a christian_n a_o most_o certain_a undoubted_a infallible_a assent_n and_o adherence_n to_o the_o gospel_n this_o command_n be_v unjust_a unreasonable_a and_o such_o a_o precept_n as_o no_o man_n prudent_o may_v observe_v for_o it_o can_v be_v wisdom_n to_o oppose_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n and_o seem_a probability_n of_o reason_n against_o the_o word_n of_o a_o angel_n against_o angelical_a reason_n and_o discourse_n ergo_fw-la god_n do_v infuse_v and_o bind_v all_o christian_n to_o admit_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a assent_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o christian_a religion_n that_o christian_a religion_n and_o tradition_n be_v pure_a and_o incorrupt_a both_o in_o the_o fountain_n and_o stream_n chap._n iii_o what_o may_v have_v be_v your_o personal_a intention_n in_o pen_v and_o publish_v of_o this_o work_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n know_v best_o the_o end_n whereunto_o your_o course_n drive_v the_o
profitable_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o she_o may_v neglect_v and_o violate_v this_o duty_n and_o be_v in_o fact_n the_o teacher_n of_o some_o error_n thus_o you_o give_v we_o every_o where_fw-mi shall_fw-mi infatuatum_fw-la infatuate_v salt_n salt_n unsavoury_a you_o often_o set_v good_a salt_n on_o the_o table_n but_o instant_o you_o corrupt_v it_o and_o the_o good_a season_n and_o reason_n thereof_o by_o senseless_a contradiction_n that_o the_o church_n be_v by_o office_n the_o rock_n and_o pillar_n of_o all_o truth_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v good_a salt_n have_v the_o favour_n and_o sense_n of_o divine_a infallible_a truth_n but_o that_o which_o follow_v that_o she_o may_v fail_v in_o this_o office_n violate_v this_o duty_n be_v senseless_a and_o speak_v without_o any_o salt_n do_v not_o you_o say_v that_o in_o religion_n none_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v judge_n that_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o office_n of_o judge_n but_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a how_o then_o can_v the_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n endue_v with_o power_n to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n violate_v his_o duty_n except_o you_o can_v conceive_v that_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a may_v fail_v in_o like_o manner_n that_o the_o church_n be_v by_o office_n by_o duty_n appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o rock_n of_o all_o truth_n both_o necessary_a and_o profitable_a to_o salvation_n be_v salt_n doctrine_n of_o heavenly_a favour_n and_o wisdom_n worthy_a of_o god_n but_o what_o you_o present_o add_v that_o in_o fact_n she_o may_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o error_n be_v extreme_o sottish_a for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o sure_a and_o firm_a foundation_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v she_o be_v fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n do_v not_o you_o say_v pag._n 148._o n._n 36._o lin_v 11._o a_o authority_n subject_a to_o error_n can_v be_v not_o firm_a or_o stable_a foundation_n of_o my_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n what_o be_v this_o but_o that_o a_o fallible_a church_n in_o something_o and_o which_o the_o facto_fw-la teach_v error_n can_v have_v the_o office_n of_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o any_o truth_n much_o less_o of_o all_o truth_n how_o often_o do_v you_o teach_v that_o god_n can_v command_v we_o to_o do_v thing_n impossible_a or_o command_v we_o to_o be_v what_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o be_v shall_v god_n command_v you_o to_o be_v immortal_a be_v not_o that_o command_n unjust_a for_o you_o be_v by_o nature_n mortal_a according_a to_o the_o body_n and_o not_o able_a to_o shake_v that_o corruption_n of_o how_o can_v you_o be_v immortal_a except_o god_n take_v away_o mortality_n and_o bestow_v the_o gift_n of_o immortality_n on_o you_o can_v god_n appoint_v that_o glass_n be_v in_o office_n as_o strong_a and_o hard_o as_o marble_n or_o that_o sand_n be_v as_o firm_a and_o stable_a as_o a_o rock_n without_o take_v brittlenes_n from_o the_o one_o and_o unstedfastnes_n from_o the_o other_o i_o conclude_v with_o this_o syllogism_n wherein_o both_o proposition_n be_v your_o own_o you_o can_v deny_v the_o conclusion_n god_n have_v appoint_v the_o church_n to_o be_v by_o office_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o all_o christian_a truth_n a_o firm_a and_o stable_a foundation_n of_o faith_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o salvation_n but_o a_o church_n subject_a to_o error_n can_v be_v a_o pillar_n ground_n or_o foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n in_o any_o thing_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o and_o consequent_o in_o all_o her_o proposal_n that_o protester_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o can_v be_v save_v without_o actual_a dereliction_n of_o their_o error_n chap._n vi_o i_o say_v in_o the_o title_n protester_n not_o protestant_n for_o though_o with_o you_o protestant_n and_o protester_n be_v the_o same_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o according_a to_o the_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n protestant_n common_o receive_v in_o england_n you_o define_v protestant_n to_o be_v such_o as_o protest_v against_o the_o corruption_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 56._o cap._n 2._o n._n 2._o cap._n 6._o n._n 56._o all_o of_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o bible_n the_o bible_n and_o only_o the_o bible_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o action_n so_o that_o all_o pretend_a gospeler_n and_o reform_a church_n all_o that_o infinite_a diversity_n of_o sect_n which_o agree_v among_o themselves_o as_o king_n james_n say_v in_o nothing_o but_o in_o union_n against_o the_o pope_n caluinist_n lutheran_n brownist_n anabaptist_n 65._o against_o vorstins_n pag._n 65._o referm_v eutychians_n arian_n sabellian_o samostatenians_n or_o socinian_o tritheist_n and_o other_o innumerable_a be_v by_o you_o comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n who_o you_o maintain_v to_o be_v free_a from_o damnable_a error_n 39_o preface_n n._n 39_o and_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o saluatson_n 2._o but_o in_o england_n as_o all_o man_n know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n we_o proper_o understand_v that_o part_n of_o the_o pretend_a english_a reformation_n which_o be_v condistinct_a from_o puritan_n and_o opposite_a against_o they_o hence_o protestant_n with_o we_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o protest_v biblist_n or_o of_o the_o pretend_a reform_a church_n but_o only_o one_o branch_n of_o they_o the_o most_o moderate_a of_o all_o &_o that_o which_o do_v least_o exorbitate_fw-la from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherefore_o by_o protester_n in_o this_o discourse_n we_o shall_v always_o understand_v they_o &_o every_o one_o of_o they_o that_o oppose_v and_o protest_v against_o any_o doctrine_n propose_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n of_o what_o sect_n or_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v and_o that_o these_o can_v be_v save_v by_o ignorance_n or_o by_o repentance_n without_o actual_a detestation_n and_o abandon_v of_o their_o error_n in_o particular_a 3._o for_o though_o they_o ignorant_o judge_v that_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n yet_o this_o ignorance_n do_v not_o excuse_v their_o err_a because_o it_o be_v not_o simple_a ignorance_n but_o such_o ignorance_n as_o be_v ever_o essential_o involue_v and_o contain_v in_o the_o crime_n of_o heresy_n to_o wit_n the_o ignorance_n of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n ignorance_n whereby_o they_o prefer_v the_o seem_n of_o their_o fancy_n or_o judgement_n before_o tradition_n counsel_n consent_v of_o father_n miracle_n the_o plain_a proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o stand_v for_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n these_o i_o say_v can_v be_v save_v in_o their_o error_n but_o be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n as_o i_o shall_v clear_o demonstrate_v in_o this_o chapter_n even_o by_o your_o own_o say_n and_o principle_n and_o first_o that_o they_o be_v schismatic_n 4._o to_o prove_v this_o we_o must_v brief_o declare_v what_o schism_n be_v the_o word_n schism_n come_v original_o from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v any_o division_n cut_v break_v rent_v away_o of_o any_o part_n from_o a_o entire_a &_o whole_a thing_n as_o a_o bough_n from_o a_o tree_n a_o stone_n from_o a_o building_n any_o member_n from_o man_n body_n by_o metaphor_n the_o word_n be_v apply_v to_o signify_v breach_n and_o division_n in_o any_o moral_a body_n which_o be_v of_o two_o kind_n political_a and_o mystical_a in_o political_a body_n or_o temporal_a state_n schism_n happen_v when_o any_o part_n of_o the_o state_n depart_v from_o the_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n of_o other_o in_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o supreme_a authority_n which_o rule_v govern_v knit_v and_o keep_v the_o whole_a together_o whether_o this_o authority_n be_v monarchical_a aristocratical_a or_o d●mocraticall_a mystical_a whole_a body_n be_v only_o one_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o to_o be_v a_o member_n as_o it_o be_v the_o sole_a and_o only_a state_n of_o salvation_n so_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o it_o be_v sinful_a and_o damnable_a schism_n then_o in_o this_o sense_n may_v be_v define_v a_o voluatary_a choice_n whereby_o a_o christian_a do_v divide_v and_o cut_v away_o himself_o from_o the_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n of_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o common_a knot_n of_o subjection_n &_o subordination_n unto_o the_o supreme_a head_n and_o authority_n of_o this_o body_n i_o say_v voluntary_a choice_n for_o no_o man_n can_v be_v make_v a_o schismatique_a against_o his_o will_n schism_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n every_o schismatique_n than_o devide_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n by_o his_o voluntary_a choice_n either_o direct_a as_o when_o one_o do_v in_o plain_a term_n refuse_v and_o detest_v subjection_n to_o
cause_n to_o admire_v your_o ignorance_n in_o latin_a yea_o want_v of_o judgement_n in_o play_v monus_n at_o her_o translation_n for_o every_o man_n of_o wit_n and_o common_a sense_n must_v of_o necessity_n perceive_v that_o s._n irenaeus_n can_v not_o mean_v corporal_a resort_v to_o rome_n without_o be_v ridiculous_a for_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o convenire_fw-la may_v signify_v to_o resort_v yet_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o do_v not_o signify_v bare_o to_o resort_v but_o to_o resort_v or_o come_v to_o a_o place_n together_o to_o meet_v there_o in_o one_o assembly_n now_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o s._n irenaeus_n will_v have_v all_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a on_o every_o side_n to_o be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o come_v to_o rome_n but_o also_o to_o come_v thither_o all_o at_o the_o same_o time_n &_o at_o once_o it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o s._n irenaeus_n do_v attribute_v powerful_a principality_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o bishop_n over_o all_o christian_a church_n by_o reason_n whereof_o all_o other_o be_v bind_v and_o oblige_v in_o duty_n to_o come_v together_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o by_o corporal_a repair_n to_o the_o city_n but_o by_o consent_n of_o mind_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n but_o this_o more_o powerful_a principality_n this_o judicial_a authority_n and_o headship_n the_o roman_a bishop_n can_v not_o have_v by_o gift_n of_o man_n as_o you_o confess_v ergo_fw-la he_o have_v it_o by_o divine_a appointment_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o who_o by_o the_o voice_n and_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v institute_v so_o that_o protester_n by_o oppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o s._n peter_n successor_n oppose_v the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o all_o christian_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v heretic_n the_o sixth_o conviction_n 27._o the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n so_o that_o to_o oppose_v she_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o oppose_v god_n himself_o and_o consequent_o whosoever_o oppose_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o heretic_n this_o argument_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o maintainer_n of_o charity_n c._n 6._o n._n 15._o to_o which_o you_o answer_v cap._n 6._o n._n 13._o first_o you_o deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n how_o say_v you_o can_v she_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o they_o if_o she_o can_v decide_v they_o and_o how_o can_v she_o decide_v they_o if_o it_o be_v a_o question_n whether_o she_o be_v judge_n of_o they_o that_o which_o be_v question_v itself_o can_v with_o any_o sense_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v fit_a to_o decide_v controversy_n second_o you_o say_v if_o she_o be_v judge_v it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v infallible_a for_o we_o have_v many_o judge_n in_o our_o court_n of_o judicature_n yet_o none_o infallible_a thus_o you_o how_o can_v you_o possible_o be_v so_o oblivious_a as_o not_o once_o to_o imagine_v that_o both_o these_o answer_n be_v direct_a contradiction_n of_o what_o you_o before_o affirm_v cap._n 2._o n._n 162._o you_o say_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n of_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o man_n that_o shall_v persist_v in_o error_n against_o her_o determination_n now_o if_o she_o be_v not_o judge_n if_o her_o authority_n be_v question_v how_o can_v she_o do_v this_o second_o she_o being_n judge_n of_o controversy_n that_o she_o must_v be_v infallible_a though_o judge_n in_o the_o court_n of_o civil_a judicature_n be_v not_o such_o you_o affirm_v cap._n 2._o n._n 17._o we_o be_v to_o obey_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o civil_a judge_n and_o not_o resist_v it_o but_o not_o always_o to_o believe_v it_o just_a but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n such_o a_o judge_n be_v require_v who_o we_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v to_o have_v judge_v right_o so_o that_o in_o civil_a controversy_n every_o honest_a and_o understand_a man_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o judge_n but_o in_o religion_n none_o but_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a thus_o you_o who_o word_n contain_v a_o unanswerable_a demonstration_n against_o yourself_o that_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v infallible_a 28._o three_o you_o say_v that_o though_o she_o be_v a_o judge_n infallible_a yet_o to_o oppose_v her_o declaration_n will_v not_o be_v to_o oppose_v god_n except_o the_o opposer_n know_v that_o she_o do_v infallible_o propose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v that_o to_o oppose_v the_o propenent_n of_o faith_n so_o faith_n cap._n 2_o n._n 26._o that_o which_o be_v either_o evident_a of_o itself_o and_o see_v by_o its_o own_o light_n or_o reduce_v unto_o &_o settle_v upon_o the_o principle_n that_o be_v so_o which_o be_v evident_o credible_a of_o itself_o or_o evident_o reduce_v to_o such_o a_o evident_a credible_a principle_n be_v heresy_n &_o a_o virtual_a oppose_v of_o god_n and_o his_o revelation_n for_o the_o proponent_n be_v a_o witness_n worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n the_o disbeliever_n of_o this_o proposition_n must_v of_o necessity_n assent_n except_o he_o be_v mislead_v by_o passion_n against_o the_o truth_n reveal_v or_o by_o pride_n against_o the_o proposer_n thereof_o as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o argument_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o seven_o conviction_n 29._o the_o church_n gather_v together_o in_o general_n counsel_n or_o a_o general_n council_n of_o christian_a bishop_n have_v power_n to_o propose_v &_o define_v with_o infallibility_n the_o conttoversy_n of_o religion_n &_o bind_v all_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o heresy_n to_o believe_v their_o definition_n but_o protester_n oppose_v general_n counsel_n &_o such_o definition_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o know_v and_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v enact_v by_o they_o contend_v that_o such_o christian_a assembly_n represent_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v be_v many_o time_n false_a as_o be_v notorious_a ergo_fw-la they_o contradict_v the_o infallible_a proponent_n of_o christian_a faith_n prefer_v their_o own_o private_a fancy_n and_o so_o be_v guilty_a of_o heretical_a obstinacy_n and_o pride_n the_o mayor_n proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v evident_a and_o undeniable_a by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o practice_n of_o all_o former_a christian_a age_n even_o of_o the_o primitive_a time_n for_o though_o then_o they_o can_v not_o meet_v together_o all_o in_o one_o place_n yet_o they_o do_v assemble_v general_o in_o different_a place_n &_o determine_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n against_o heresy_n that_o do_v arise_v in_o proof_n hereof_o the_o testimony_n of_o tertullian_n be_v clear_a and_o direct_v mention_v general_a counsel_n gather_v by_o command_n no_o doubt_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n 13._o de_fw-fr iciunijs_fw-la cap._n 13._o aguntur_fw-la praecepta_fw-la per_fw-la graecias_n illas_fw-la certis_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la concilia_fw-la ex_fw-la universis_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la perquae_fw-la &_o altiord_n quaeque_fw-la in_o common_a tractantur_fw-la &_o ipsa_fw-la representatio_fw-la totius_fw-la nominis_fw-la christiani_n magna_fw-la veneratione_n celebratur_fw-la behold_v the_o notorious_a antiquity_n of_o the_o catholic_a tradition_n about_o the_o venerable_a authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n to_o determine_v the_o high_a matter_n of_o religion_n as_o be_v the_o representative_a church_n or_o representation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a name_n wherefore_o protester_n who_o contemn_v this_o tradition_n evident_o certain_a or_o credible_a of_o itself_o and_o oppose_v general_n counsel_n can_v be_v excuse_v from_o damnable_a heretical_a pride_n 30._o but_o tradition_n though_o never_o so_o perpetual_a and_o primitive_a full_a and_o universal_a will_v not_o grow_v in_o your_o garden_n except_o the_o same_o be_v water_v from_o your_o well_n with_o who_o nothing_o be_v well_o but_o what_o be_v your_o own_o thus_o you_o write_v c._n 2._o n._n 85._o lin_v 6._o this_o we_o know_v that_o none_o be_v fit_a to_o pronounce_v for_o all_o the_o world_n a_o judicial_a definitive_a oblige_a sentence_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n but_o only_o such_o a_o man_n or_o such_o a_o society_n of_o man_n as_o be_v authorize_v thereto_o by_o god_n and_o beside_o we_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o give_v to_o any_o man_n or_o society_n of_o man_n any_o such_o authority_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o say_n will_v establish_v the_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n from_o god_n when_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o second_o shall_v be_v confute_v by_o d._n potter_n yea_o by_o your_o own_o contradiction_n thereof_o d._n potter_n write_v pag._n 165._o we_o say_v that_o such_o general_n counsel_n as_o
intellectum_fw-la in_o obsequium_fw-la christi_fw-la head_n and_o the_o unicorn_n horn_n of_o his_o singular_a wit_n in_o the_o lap_n of_o her_o communion_n choose_v to_o be_v rather_o take_v captive_a by_o voluntary_a subjection_n to_o her_o truth_n than_o show_v a_o thrall_n of_o error_n in_o the_o chain_n of_o insoluble_a contradiction_n against_o himself_o 14._o in_o cite_v his_o testimony_n i_o have_v be_v exact_a &_o punctual_a even_o to_o a_o line_n and_o to_o set_v down_o formal_o full_o and_o large_o his_o word_n and_o whole_a discourse_n more_o perhaps_o then_o some_o may_v think_v necessary_a or_o fit_a but_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v find_v faulty_a for_o excess_n in_o sincerity_n then_o for_o defect_n yea_o the_o word_n that_o be_v upon_o some_o occasion_n cite_v before_o i_o have_v when_o in_o other_o occasion_n i_o make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o repeat_v they_o again_o at_o large_a for_o the_o reader_n great_a ease_n not_o to_o bind_v he_o to_o seek_v for_o they_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o former_a citation_n i_o have_v quote_v not_o the_o page_n but_o the_o chapter_n number_n &_o line_n of_o the_o number_n that_o so_o the_o quotation_n may_v be_v common_a both_o to_o the_o first_o &_o second_o edition_n which_o agree_v in_o chapter_n number_n and_o line_n but_o not_o in_o page_n yet_o sometime_o when_o the_o number_n be_v long_o i_o have_v quote_v the_o page_n and_o the_o line_n of_o the_o first_o edition_n in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o second_o in_o the_o margin_n the_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n be_v these_o follow_v 1._o that_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o resolve_v final_o into_o natural_a wit_n and_o reason_n but_o into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o christian_a faith_n be_v absolute_o certain_a and_o infallible_a 3._o that_o the_o current_n of_o christian_a tradition_n be_v incorrupt_a both_o in_o the_o fountain_n and_o in_o the_o stream_n 4._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o only_a rule_n 5._o that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n of_o faith_n 6._o that_o all_o protester_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v schismatic_n 7._o that_o they_o be_v also_o heretic_n a_o advertisement_n to_o the_o reader_n this_o treatise_n good_a reader_n be_v to_o the_o last_o word_n and_o syllable_n thereof_o finish_v review_v and_o ready_a for_o the_o print_n long_o since_o even_o in_o april_n of_o this_o year_n 1638._o so_o that_o it_o may_v have_v be_v print_v and_o publish_v and_o have_v come_v to_o thy_o sight_n in_o the_o last_o trinity_n term_n but_o for_o the_o tempest_n and_o storm_n of_o war_n which_o infest_a ultra-marine_a country_n near_o unto_o england_n and_o be_v no_o where_n more_o boisterous_a then_o over_o that_o place_n where_o this_o treatise_n shall_v have_v be_v press_v into_o the_o light_n for_o this_o thunder_a noise_n of_o mars_n fright_v workman_n and_o drive_v they_o away_o into_o other_o calm_a coast_n and_o afterward_o bring_v sharp_a and_o long_o sickness_n both_o on_o the_o printer_n and_o author_n which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n it_o come_v so_o late_o unto_o public_a view_n i_o hope_v this_o remissness_n and_o tardity_n will_v be_v recompense_v and_o satisfy_v by_o ensue_a speed_n and_o diligence_n in_o deliver_v unto_o the_o world_n other_o treatise_n which_o have_v be_v also_o long_o since_o ready_a for_o the_o print_n against_o this_o cunning_a and_o close_a vnderminer_n of_o christian_a religion_n while_o he_o pretende_v to_o be_v a_o opposer_n but_o of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a the_o church_n conquerant_fw-la over_o humane_a wit._n that_o true_a christian_a faith_n be_v not_o final_o resolve_v by_o natural_a wit_n and_o reason_n but_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n chap._n i._n christian_n resolution_n about_o believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n 8._o cap._n 1_o n_o 8._o as_o you_o also_o note_v stand_v upon_o two_o principle_n the_o one_o whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v for_o true_a be_v true_a or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v certain_a truth_n the_o other_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v of_o god_n about_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n we_o be_v full_o and_o abundant_o resolve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v who_o can_v neither_o be_v deceive_v himself_o nor_o deceive_v us._n the_o question_n be_v by_o what_o mean_n may_v christian_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n catholic_n make_v their_o last_o resolution_n into_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a deliver_v by_o universal_a tradition_n evident_o credible_a for_o itself_o or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v what_o by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o christian_a catholic_a ancestor_n she_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n protestant_n resolve_v to_o rest_v final_o on_o scripture_n which_o as_o they_o pretend_v by_o the_o clear_a beam_n of_o its_o own_o light_n show_v itself_o and_o the_o sense_n they_o make_v thereof_o to_o be_v divine_a supernatural_a truth_n and_o consequent_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o agree_v nether_a with_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o both_o reject_v resolution_n by_o the_o inward_a evident_a certainty_n of_o scripture_n as_o a_o fond_a conceit_n and_o also_o banish_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o a_o intolerable_a usurpation_n &_o so_o final_o you_o come_v to_o rest_v upon_o the_o judgement_n and_o choice_n of_o natural_a reason_n pretend_v that_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o religion_n must_v at_o last_o follow_v their_o own_o best_a wit_n understanding_n and_o discourse_n in_o which_o conceit_n you_o be_v not_o constant_a you_o contradict_v it_o often_o yea_o you_o be_v so_o uncertain_a and_o unsettle_a in_o all_o your_o discourse_n as_o you_o say_v nothing_o in_o one_o place_n which_o you_o do_v not_o in_o some_o other_o place_n utter_o deny_v the_o discovery_n of_o this_o your_o perpetuail_n jar_v and_o fight_v with_o yourself_o be_v the_o mark_n this_o treatise_n aim_v at_o whereby_o it_o will_v appear_v whether_o you_o have_v reason_n to_o write_v as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o your_o work_n though_o the_o music_n i_o have_v make_v be_v dull_a and_o flat_a and_o even_o down_o right_a plainesong_n yet_o your_o curious_a and_o critical_a care_n shall_v discover_v no_o discord_n in_o it_o 7._o mare_fw-la c._n 7._o i_o hope_v together_o with_o this_o discourse_n the_o finger_fw-la of_o our_o saviour_n will_v enter_v into_o the_o deaf_a care_n of_o your_o soul_n &_o open_v they_o to_o discern_v the_o perpetual_a jar_a of_o your_o voice_n with_o itself_o and_o also_o make_v you_o see_v that_o it_o will_v be_v always_o so_o except_o you_o give_v over_o sing_v the_o canticle_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o high_a strain_n of_o quaver_v and_o waver_a division_n from_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o crotchet_n of_o your_o own_o conceit_n and_o fall_v to_o the_o plain_a gregorian_n ecclesiastical_a tune_n humble_v your_o treble-wit_n to_o sing_v the_o base_a in_o the_o low_a note_n of_o subjection_n to_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o first_o conviction_n 2._o this_o conviction_n be_v ground_v on_o this_o contradict_a yourself_o that_o cap._n 2._o n._n 3._o in_o fine_a you_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o sole_a judge_n of_o controversy_n that_o be_v the_o sole_a rule_n to_o judge_v they_o by_o those_o only_o except_v wherein_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n which_o can_v be_v determine_v but_o by_o natural_a reason_n the_o only_a principle_n beside_o scripture_n which_o be_v common_a to_o christian_n to_o the_o contrary_a cap._n 2._o n._n 153._o you_o write_v universal_a tradition_n be_v the_o rule_n to_o judge_v all_o controversy_n by_o &_o preface_n n._n 13._o to_o the_o directour_n assertion_n that_o if_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v in_o define_v canonical_a scripture_n than_o we_o must_v receive_v scripture_n either_o by_o the_o private_a spirit_n or_o by_o natural_a wit_n and_o judgement_n or_o by_o preexamination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v therein_o you_o answer_v though_o the_o present_a church_n may_v possible_o err_v in_o her_o judgement_n touch_v this_o matter_n yet_o have_v we_o other_o direction_n beside_o either_o of_o these_o three_o and_o that_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n thus_o you_o consider_v what_o sweet_a harmony_n and_o consent_n there_o be_v betwixt_o these_o two_o say_n controversy_n wherein_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n can_v be_v determine_v but_o by_o natural_a reason_n the_o only_a principle_n beside_o scripture_n common_a to_o christian_n the_o controversy_n which_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a wherein_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n may_v
representation_n be_v so_o certain_a &_o infallible_a that_o it_o imply_v contradiction_n that_o man_n shall_v be_v deceive_v by_o it_o either_o by_o some_o extraordinary_a work_n of_o god_n to_o man_n unknown_a or_o through_o the_o infinity_n of_o the_o thing_n apprehend_v which_o man_n can_v comprehend_v for_o example_n man_n see_v the_o chimney_n of_o a_o town_n smoke_n thence_o they_o conclude_v with_o physical_a certitude_n that_o there_o be_v fire_n in_o those_o chimney_n wherein_o they_o may_v be_v mistake_v see_v god_n may_v have_v raise_v that_o smoke_n without_o any_o fire_n we_o be_v better_o assure_v by_o the_o light_n of_o understanding_n about_o universal_a principle_n which_o appear_v manifest_o true_a by_o the_o very_a notion_n of_o the_o single_a word_n yet_o not_o so_o universal_o sure_a but_o we_o may_v be_v deceive_v by_o they_o about_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a thing_n that_o principle_n i_o before_o name_v every_o whole_a thing_n be_v great_a than_o any_o single_a part_n thereof_o we_o be_v not_o sure_a thereof_o in_o infinite_a whole_a thing_n yea_o many_o learned_a man_n do_v maintain_v that_o in_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v not_o great_a than_o a_o single_a part_n thereof_o that_o know_a rule_n and_o principle_n of_o all_o discourse_n the_o thing_n with_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o a_o three_o thing_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o between_o themselves_o faith_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o same_o fail_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a may_v be_v and_o be_v identify_v with_o three_o divine_a person_n real_o distinct_a nor_o be_v this_o to_o destroy_v all_o certitude_n of_o natural_a knowledge_n but_o only_o to_o make_v the_o same_o finite_a and_o limit_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o its_o weak_a reach_n and_o capacity_n infinite_o inferior_a to_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o altogether_o subordinate_a to_o his_o most_o infallible_a word_n 5._o now_o deception_n can_v possible_o happen_v in_o our_o believe_v of_o doctrine_n represent_v to_o our_o understanding_n clear_o mark_v with_o evident_a miracle_n and_o other_o supernatural_a note_n show_v they_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n for_o god_n work_v by_o his_o power_n above_o nature_n to_o move_v man_n to_o believe_v such_o divine_a and_o miraculous_a doctrine_n can_v also_o work_v above_o nature_n what_o may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o deception_n therein_o for_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o with_o be_v altogether_o impossible_a nor_o can_v there_o be_v fear_n danger_n or_o possibility_n that_o in_o this_o belief_n we_o may_v be_v deceive_v through_o weakness_n of_o judgement_n cause_v by_o the_o finite_a capacity_n of_o humane_a wit_n because_o in_o this_o belief_n the_o light_n of_o nature_n all_o reason_n be_v not_o our_o guide_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n discover_v high_a mystery_n and_o hide_a secret_n conform_v to_o his_o infinite_a and_o undeceivable_a understanding_n hence_o a_o late_a learned_a writer_n our_o countryman_n say_v excellent_o to_o this_o purpose_n insignita_fw-la purpose_n p._n thomas_n baconus_fw-la southellus_n in_fw-la sva_fw-la regula_n viva_fw-la seu_fw-la analysi_fw-la fidei_fw-la dispat_o 3._o cap._n 6._o n._n 122._o haec_fw-la motiva_fw-la convincunt_fw-la necessarió_n &_o metaphysice_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la ulla_fw-la vera_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la religio_fw-la etc._n etc._n ea_fw-la alia_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la quám_fw-la baec_fw-la nostra_fw-la his_fw-la motivis_fw-la insignita_fw-la that_o the_o motive_n of_o christian_a catholic_n credibility_n be_v most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o themselves_o and_o do_v most_o manifest_o and_o even_o with_o metaphysical_a evidence_n convince_v our_o christian_a catholic_n religion_n to_o be_v the_o true_a way_n of_o salvation_n as_o certain_o as_o that_o there_o be_v any_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n or_o any_o divine_a providence_n about_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n who_o can_v desire_v great_a certitude_n and_o evidence_n than_o this_o 6._o the_o five_o thing_n be_v firm_a adherence_n to_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v so_o that_o the_o believer_n can_v at_o all_o or_o else_o very_a hardly_o be_v drive_v from_o his_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o this_o adherence_n in_o christian_a catholic_n be_v so_o firm_a that_o they_o be_v ready_a not_o only_o to_o give_v their_o life_n in_o testimony_n thereof_o but_o also_o will_v deny_v their_o own_o sense_n their_o reason_n and_o all_o natural_a evidence_n rather_o than_o admit_v any_o doubt_n of_o doctrine_n in_o this_o manner_n represent_v to_o they_o as_o god_n infallible_a word_n 7._o if_o any_o object_n that_o the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v often_o shake_v with_o doubt_n sometime_o overthrow_v whereas_o the_o assent_n of_o natural_a knowledge_n stand_v constant_a and_o unmooved_a without_o danger_n of_o fall_v i_o answer_v this_o be_v true_a but_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v not_o because_o the_o assent_n of_o natural_a knowledge_n be_v more_o certain_a and_o firm_a of_o itself_o but_o because_o christian_a faith_n be_v more_o expose_v to_o the_o blast_n of_o temptation_n a_o oak_n on_o the_o top_n of_o a_o high_a mountain_n be_v shake_v with_o wind_n and_o storm_n and_o many_o time_n beat_v to_o the_o ground_n whereas_o a_o tender_a sprig_n grow_v low_a out_o of_o the_o wind_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o this_o danger_n yet_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o sprig_n be_v more_o firm_a and_o deep_o root_v in_o the_o ground_n then_o the_o oak_n christian_n faith_n stand_v on_o high_a have_v for_o matter_n and_o subject_n high_a invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n which_o though_o they_o be_v by_o the_o believer_n sufficient_o see_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n yet_o not_o see_v at_o all_o by_o natural_a reason_n to_o be_v true_a in_o themselves_o yea_o still_o in_o themselves_o they_o remain_v dark_a obscure_a difficile_a and_o seem_o impossible_a in_o humane_a reason_n hence_o though_o faith_n be_v firm_o ground_v and_o deep_o root_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v christian_a doctrine_n yet_o strong_a apprehension_n of_o the_o seem_a impossibility_n thereof_o like_o violent_a blast_n cause_v the_o same_o sometime_o to_o shake_v &_o waver_v with_o involuntary_a doubt_n whereas_o the_o assent_n of_o natural_a knowledge_n be_v never_o or_o seldom_o tempt_v to_o doubt_v because_o there_o be_v no_o seem_a impossibility_n in_o such_o truth_n by_o this_o explication_n of_o our_o catholic_a resolution_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v manifest_a you_o have_v do_v we_o wrong_n in_o say_v that_o we_o require_v that_o man_n build_v a_o most_o certain_a assent_n on_o fallible_a uncertain_a and_o only_o probable_a ground_n the_o second_o conviction_n 8._o your_o ground_n to_o make_v the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n fallible_a and_o only_o probable_a be_v because_o it_o be_v a_o assent_n to_o a_o conclusion_n deduce_v from_o two_o premise_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v fallible_a and_o only_a probable_a cap._n 1._o n._n 8._o lin_v 28._o our_o faith_n be_v a_o assent_n to_o this_o conclusion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v true_a which_o be_v deduce_v from_o the_o former_a thesis_n all_o which_o god_n reveal_v for_o true_a be_v true_a which_o be_v metaphysical_o certain_a and_o the_o former_a hypothesis_n all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v of_o god_n whereof_o we_o can_v have_v but_o moral_a certainty_n we_o can_v possible_o by_o natural_a mean_n be_v more_o certain_a of_o it_o then_o of_o the_o weak_a of_o the_o premise_n for_o the_o conclusion_n still_o follow_v the_o worse_a part_n if_o there_o be_v any_o worse_a and_o must_v be_v negative_a particular_a contingent_a or_o but_o moral_o certain_a if_o any_o of_o the_o proposition_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v derive_v be_v so_o neither_o can_v we_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n unless_o we_o be_v thus_o certain_a of_o all_o the_o principle_n whereon_o it_o be_v ground_v as_o a_o man_n can_v stand_v or_o go_v strong_o if_o either_o of_o his_o leg_n be_v weak_a or_o as_o a_o building_n can_v be_v stable_n if_o any_o one_o of_o the_o necessary_a pillar_n be_v infirm_a and_o instable_a thus_o you_o and_o then_o to_o show_v this_o hypothesis_n all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v only_o moral_o certain_a you_o bring_v this_o reason_n because_o it_o be_v prove_v only_o by_o tradition_n universal_a only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n a_o argument_n only_o probable_a cap._n 6._o n._n 40._o the_o joint_a tradition_n of_o all_o apostolic_a church_n with_o one_o mouth_n and_o with_o one_o voice_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o father_n not_o as_o a_o demonstration_n but_o only_o as_o a_o argument_n very_o probable_a cap._n 6._o n._n 8._o
tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o father_n to_o son_n can_v be_v a_o fit_a ground_n but_o of_o moral_a assurance_n cap._n 3._o n._n 44._o lin_v 55._o who_o can_v warrant_v we_o that_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v all_o apostolical_a thus_o you_o 9_o this_o be_v your_o discourse_n to_o prove_v your_o paradox_n that_o the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v fallible_a and_o only_o moral_o certain_a but_o the_o foundation_n whereon_o you_o build_v your_o main_a principle_n universal_a tradition_n be_v not_o infallible_a you_o yourself_o over_o throw_n and_o establish_v the_o contrary_a ground_n that_o tradition_n unwritten_a be_v as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n cap._n 4_o n._n 13._o lin_v 19_o universal_a and_o never-failing_a tradition_n give_v this_o testimony_n both_o to_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n that_o they_o both_o by_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v seal_v and_o testify_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n behold_v the_o hypothesis_n that_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v reveal_v of_o god_n stand_v upon_o a_o pillar_n firm_a and_o never_o fail_v if_o you_o say_v moral_o certain_a and_o never_o fail_v not_o absolute_o i_o reply_v object_v unto_o you_o another_o place_n where_o you_o express_o suppose_v your_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v absolute_a to_o wit_n of_o those_o book_n of_o which_o there_o be_v never_o doubt_v make_v pag._n 69._o we_o do_v not_o profess_v ourselves_o so_o absolute_o and_o undoubted_o certain_a neither_o do_v we_o urge_v other_o to_o be_v so_o of_o those_o book_n with_o have_v be_v doubt_v as_o of_o those_o that_o never_o have_v how_o clear_o and_o in_o express_a term_n do_v you_o profess_v that_o your_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v never_o question_v be_v not_o only_o probable_a and_o moral_a but_o absolute_a certainty_n undoubted_a and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o see_v tradition_n by_o lively_a voice_n convey_v unto_o we_o what_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v about_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n which_o book_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v what_o they_o have_v by_o divine_a revelation_n from_o christ_n jesn_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o consequent_o that_o these_o book_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n unwritten_a as_o certain_a as_o if_o it_o be_v write_v for_o as_o d._n field_n 238._o field_n d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o pag._n 238._o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o writing_n that_o give_v thing_n their_o authority_n but_o the_o worth_n and_o credit_n of_o he_o that_o deliver_v though_o by_o word_n and_o lively_a voice_n only_o 10._o perhaps_o you_o will_v tell_v i_o as_o you_o do_v charity_n maintain_v upon_o another_o occasion_n cap._n 2._o n._n 86._o if_o d._n field_n be_v infallible_a and_o these_o word_n have_v not_o slip_v unaduised_o from_o he_o this_o have_v be_v the_o best_a argument_n in_o your_o book_n well_o then_o i_o must_v i_o see_v bring_v a_o author_n infallible_a in_o proof_n that_o tradition_n be_v equal_a in_o certainty_n unto_o scripture_n &_o one_o so_o advise_v as_o all_o catholic_n compare_v to_o his_o wisdom_n be_v but_o a_o company_n of_o blind_a unconsider_v man_n what_o if_o i_o find_v this_o doctrine_n in_o your_o book_n prove_v even_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n d._n field_n use_v because_o be_v write_v give_v not_o authority_n to_o god_n word_n than_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v say_v without_o any_o if_o that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a argument_n in_o my_o book_n but_o where_o be_v this_o passage_n to_o be_v find_v perchance_o if_o you_o be_v to_o find_v it_o yourself_o you_o will_v be_v to_o seek_v &_o more_o to_o seek_v if_o you_o go_v about_o to_o reconcile_v your_o contradiction_n in_o which_o case_n you_o who_o vaunt_v yourself_o for_o the_o witty_a oedipus_n in_o solue_v the_o sophism_n and_o knot_n of_o charity_n maintain_v will_v perhaps_o be_v at_o a_o stop_n and_o be_v force_v to_o say_v with_o oedipus_n be_v to_o solve_v his_o own_o riddle_n ego_fw-la ille_fw-la victae_fw-la spolia_fw-la qui_fw-la sphyngis_fw-la tuli_fw-la haerebo_fw-la scripti_fw-la haerebo_fw-la scripti_fw-la fati_fw-la tardus_fw-la interpres_fw-la mei_fw-la 11._o the_o place_n be_v pag._n 153._o n._n 45._o where_o you_o speak_v thus_o to_o your_o adversary_n no_o less_o say_v you_o be_v s._n chrysostome_n for_o the_o infallible_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o you_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallible_a not_o in_o tradition_n which_o we_o willing_o grant_v if_o they_o be_v universal_a as_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o scripture_n be_v for_o neither_o do_v be_v write_v make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o infallible_a or_o be_v unwritten_a make_v it_o less_o infallible_a in_o these_o word_n you_o affirm_v that_o tradition_n universal_a namely_o and_o principal_o that_o tradition_n that_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n you_o prove_v it_o because_o neither_o do_v be_v write_v make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o infallible_a or_o be_v unwritten_a make_v it_o less_o infallible_a in_o which_o proof_n you_o suppose_v that_o as_o scripture_n be_v the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n so_o tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a and_o therefore_o equal_a in_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n to_o scripture_n 12._o now_o the_o ground_n of_o your_o error_n be_v by_o your_o contradiction_n thereof_o and_o by_o your_o confession_n yea_o by_o your_o demonstration_n of_o the_o contrary_a truth_n overthrow_v i_o prove_v the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o be_v absolute_o certain_a in_o this_o manner_n christian_a faith_n be_v a_o assent_n to_o this_o conclusion_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v true_a this_o conclusion_n be_v deduce_v from_o this_o thesis_n whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v for_o true_a be_v true_a and_o this_o hypothesis_n the_o christian_a creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o if_o both_o these_o proposition_n be_v absolute_o certain_a than_o the_o assent_n to_o the_o conclusion_n be_v infallible_a and_o absolute_o certain_a now_o that_o both_o these_o premise_n or_o proposition_n be_v absolute_o certain_a i_o prove_v the_o thesis_n whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v be_v truth_n you_o grant_v to_o be_v absolute_o and_o metaphysical_o certain_a but_o the_o hypothesis_n the_o christian_a creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v also_o absolute_o certain_a first_o because_o it_o be_v as_o you_o grant_v a_o universal_a tradition_n as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n but_o scripture_n be_v absolute_o and_o metaphysical_o certain_a truth_n because_o it_o be_v doctrine_n reveal_v of_o god_n second_o whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v whether_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o writing_n or_o by_o lively_a voice_n only_o be_v absolute_o and_o metaphysical_o certain_a but_o the_o tradition_n that_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v divine_a revelation_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n seal_v and_o confirm_v the_o truth_n thereof_o with_o work_n of_o god_n as_o you_o confess_v ergo_fw-la the_o tradition_n that_o the_o christian_a creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n be_v absolute_o certain_a and_o infallible_a final_o you_o say_v cap._n 1._o n._n 8._o in_o sine_fw-la infine_v 2._o edition_n cap._n 2._o n._n 8._o infine_v if_o a_o message_n be_v bring_v i_o from_o a_o man_n of_o absolute_a credit_n by_o a_o messenger_n that_o be_v not_o so_o my_o confidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o relation_n can_v but_o be_v rebate_v and_o lessen_v by_o my_o diffidence_n in_o the_o relatour_n this_o you_o i_o subsume_v but_o the_o message_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v bring_v to_o i_o and_o to_o every_o christian_a from_o a_o man_n of_o absolute_a credit_n christ_n jesus_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n in_o who_o be_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n by_o a_o messenger_n of_o absolute_a credit_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o church_n deliver_v universal_a tradition_n which_o be_v as_o you_o confess_v as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n therefore_o our_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o rebate_v or_o lessen_v by_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o perpetual_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o if_o we_o have_v have_v the_o message_n immediate_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n 13._o jadde_a tradition_n universal_a be_v not_o only_o as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n but_o also_o more_o certain_a in_o respect_n of_o us._n this_o i_o ground_n
4._o what_o you_o say_v that_o they_o err_v and_o continue_v in_o error_n through_o inaduertence_n and_o prejudice_n you_o contradict_v else_o where_o saying_n cap._n 2._o n._n 155._o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o person_n while_o they_o be_v live_v be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o c._n 2._o n._n 17_o you_o say_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n none_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v judge_n but_o such_o as_o be_v infallible_a and_o cap._n 4._o n._n 88_o lin_v 20._o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o constitution_n of_o infallible_a judge_n that_o though_o they_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o avoid_v error_n yet_o certain_o they_o shall_v not_o err_v now_o can_v you_o put_v these_o proposition_n together_o in_o discourse_n the_o apostle_n be_v while_o they_o be_v live_v the_o infallible_a guide_n &_o judge_n of_o faith_n so_o make_v and_o ordain_v by_o the_o come_n down_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o judge_n and_o guide_n infallible_a certain_o shall_v not_o err_v though_o they_o through_o inaduertence_n or_o prejudice_n neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o avoid_v error_n ergo_fw-la the_o apostle_n certain_o do_v not_o err_v nor_o deliver_v error_n through_o negligence_n inaduertence_n or_o prejudice_n and_o yet_o more_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n you_o write_v c._n 2._o n._n 34._o the_o apostle_n infallibility_n be_v in_o a_o more_o absolute_a manner_n the_o church_n in_o a_o more_o limit_a sense_n the_o apostle_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n into_o all_o truth_n efficaciter_fw-la the_o church_n be_v lead_v also_o into_o all_o truth_n sufficienter_fw-la so_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n may_v be_v fift_o compare_v to_o the_o star_n and_o the_o wiseman_n the_o star_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o finger_fw-la of_o god_n and_o can_v not_o but_o go_v right_a to_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v but_o the_o wiseman_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o star_n to_o christ_n lead_v i_o say_v not_o efficaciter_fw-la or_o irresistibiliter_fw-la but_o sufficienter_fw-la so_o that_o if_o they_o will_v they_o may_v follow_v it_o if_o they_o will_v not_o they_o may_v choose_v 5._o but_o you_o stay_v not_o long_o in_o this_o conceit_n of_o their_o absolute_a infallibility_n and_o be_v irresistable_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n for_o within_o two_o or_o three_o page_n you_o say_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o not_o err_v be_v make_v they_o but_o upon_o condition_n if_o they_o be_v not_o negligent_a and_o if_o they_o keep_v their_o station_n and._n cap._n 3._o n._n 77._o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n yea_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n not_o that_o this_o quality_n be_v inseparable_a from_o their_o person_n but_o because_o it_o be_v their_o office_n to_o be_v so_o for_o if_o they_o must_v have_v be_v so_o of_o necessity_n &_o can_v not_o have_v be_v otherwise_o in_o vain_a have_v he_o put_v they_o in_o fear_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v if_o the_o salt_n lose_v the_o savour_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v behold_v how_o you_o falter_v before_o they_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n of_o necessity_n efficaciter_fw-la irresistibiliter_fw-la now_o not_o infallible_o not_o of_o necessity_n they_o be_v in_o possibility_n to_o err_v neither_o yet_o do_v you_o take_v up_o your_o stand_v here_o 〈◊〉_d here_o cap._n 6._o n._n 〈◊〉_d you_o run_v into_o the_o contrary_a extreme_a that_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o lose_v the_o savour_n of_o sanctity_n or_o charity_n and_o truth_n because_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o can_v not_o have_v any_o worldly_a or_o sinister_a intention_n in_o their_o preach_n and_o then_o again_o to_o the_o contrary_a cap._n 2._o n._n 93._o this_o be_v to_o cross_v the_o end_n of_o our_o creation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v glorify_v by_o free_a obedience_n to_o conclude_v for_o i_o be_o weary_a with_o the_o follow_v of_o your_o lightheaded_a guide_n fetch_v frisk_v every_o way_n you_o jump_v at_o last_o upon_o a_o truth_n the_o direct_a contradiction_n of_o that_o you_o say_v of_o the_o apostle_n err_v for_o a_o time_n about_o the_o church_n universality_n for_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 14._o the_o apostle_n who_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o beginning_n do_v believe_v the_o church_n universal_a though_o their_o preach_n in_o the_o begin_n be_v not_o so_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o church_n universal_a even_o in_o your_o sense_n that_o be_v universal_a de_fw-fr jure_fw-la though_o not_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la thus_o you_o now_o this_o proposition_n the_o apostle_n even_o in_o the_o beginning_n before_o their_o preach_n be_v universal_a when_o they_o preach_v to_o jew_n only_o do_v believe_v the_o church_n universal_a de_fw-fr jure_fw-la by_o divine_a law_n be_v it_o not_o a_o direct_a contradiction_n of_o this_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o begin_n before_o their_o preach_n be_v universal_a do_v not_o believe_v the_o church_n universal_a de_fw-fr jure_fw-la by_o divine_a law_n yea_o they_o err_v think_v it_o be_v against_o the_o divine_a law_n to_o preach_v universally_a or_o to_o any_o but_o jew_n it_o be_v well_o that_o your_o wit_n the_o guide_n of_o your_o faith_n do_v profess_v that_o it_o can_v believe_v contradiction_n at_o once_o this_o heresy_n and_o this_o truth_n otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o that_o religion_n you_o maintain_v in_o your_o book_n the_o three_o conviction_n 6._o from_o the_o apostle_n you_o pass_v to_o the_o second_o age_n after_o christ_n accuse_v the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n as_o stain_a universal_o with_o impure_a and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n cap._n 5._o n._n 91._o lin_v 41._o seek_v to_o answer_v what_o charity_n maintain_v object_n that_o sundry_a protestant_n acknowledge_v many_o of_o our_o doctrine_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n you_o say_v no_o antiquity_n except_o it_o be_v absolute_a and_o primitive_a be_v a_o certain_a sign_n of_o true_a doctrine_n for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o corruption_n as_o we_o pretend_v it_o be_v who_o can_v possible_o warrant_v we_o that_o part_n of_o this_o corruption_n may_v not_o get_v in_o and_o prevail_v in_o the_o 5._o or_o 4_o or_o 3._o or_o 2._o age_n especial_o see_v the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n be_v work_v though_o secret_o even_o in_o their_o time_n if_o any_o man_n ask_v how_o can_v it_o become_v universal_a in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n let_v he_o tell_v i_o how_o the_o error_n of_o the_o millenaries_n and_o the_o communicate_v of_o infant_n become_v so_o soon_o universal_a and_o then_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v what_o be_v do_v in_o some_o be_v possible_a in_o other_o thus_o you_o which_o you_o repeat_v and_o inculcate_v more_o than_o forty_o time_n at_o the_o least_o wherein_o you_o be_v like_a to_o the_o false_a witness_n to_o one_o of_o the_o which_o daniel_n say_v very_o well_o thou_o have_v speak_v false_o against_o thy_o own_o head_n for_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n shall_v divide_v thou_o with_o a_o sword_n in_o the_o mid_n and_o do_v thou_o away_o you_o be_v false_a against_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o holy_a primitive_a church_n as_o that_o witness_n be_v against_o susanna_n and_o the_o same_o punishment_n of_o division_n and_o contradiction_n against_o yourself_o be_v by_o god_n just_a sentence_n fall_v on_o your_o head_n 7._o you_o be_v false_a in_o say_v so_o many_o time_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millenaries_n to_o wit_n of_o christ_n earthly_a kingdom_n in_o the_o earthly_a jerusalem_n full_a of_o all_o earthly_a felicity_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v deliver_v as_o you_o say_v pag._n 347._o lin_v 24._o as_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o it_o be_v universal_o receive_v teach_v by_o all_o the_o doctor_n and_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o or_o about_o that_o time_n who_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n be_v any_o way_n record_v this_o to_o be_v false_a be_v prove_v by_o your_o falsification_n of_o s._n justine_n martyr_n who_o you_o make_v say_v that_o all_o good_a and_o orthodox_n christian_n in_o his_o time_n believe_v it_o and_o only_a heretic_n deny_v it_o for_o his_o word_n be_v i_o and_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v right_o persuade_v in_o all_o thing_n believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n &_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n it_o be_v true_a all_o good_a christian_n believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n which_o you_o skip_v over_o because_o socinian_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o in_o the_o christian_a sense_n and_o a_o thousand_o year_n of_o felicity_n in_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o heaven_n not_o upon_o earth_n yea_o s._n justine_n in_o that_o place_n do_v plain_o confess_v that_o many_o significan●_n many_o multos_fw-la qui_fw-la purae_fw-la piaeque_fw-la sunt_fw-la chriistianorum_n sententiae_fw-la hoc_fw-la non_fw-la agnoscere_fw-la tibi_fw-la significan●_n who_o be_v of_o the_o
divinity_n of_o a_o writing_n can_v be_v know_v from_o itself_o alone_o but_o by_o some_o extrinsicall_a authority_n you_o need_v not_o prove_v for_o no_o wise_a man_n deny_v it_o but_o then_o this_o authority_n be_v that_o of_o universal_a tradition_n not_o of_o your_o church_n from_o this_o truth_n by_o you_o grant_v i_o thus_o argue_v that_o can_v be_v the_o only_a rule_n or_o by_o itself_o alone_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n with_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o able_a to_o prove_v and_o show_v that_o which_o it_o contain_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o that_o which_o can_v show_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v show_v itself_o to_o be_v matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o scripture_n alone_o by_o itself_o can_v prove_v itself_o nor_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n it_o contain_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o to_o this_o end_n need_v the_o extrinsecall_a authority_n of_o tradition_n therefore_o not_o scripture_n alone_o but_o scripture_n join_v with_o the_o extrinsecall_a authority_n of_o tradition_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 10._o this_o defect_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n or_o by_o itself_o alone_o any_o rule_n of_o faith_n you_o lay_v open_a cap._n 2._o n._n 8._o lin_v 7._o though_o a_o writing_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o we_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n by_o its_o own_o say_n so_o for_o nothing_o be_v prove_v true_a by_o be_v say_v or_o write_v in_o a_o book_n but_o only_a by_o tradition_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n credible_a of_o itself_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v so_o in_o itself_o thus_o you_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v how_o can_v scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n or_o by_o itself_o any_o rule_n of_o faith_n if_o nothing_o be_v prove_v true_a nothing_o show_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n bare_o by_o be_v write_v therein_o but_o only_o by_o the_o light_n of_o tradition_n join_v unto_o scripture_n 11._o hence_o i_o infer_v if_o scripture_n by_o itself_o without_o tradition_n can_v be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n nor_o show_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n how_o much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n against_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v deep_a vanity_n in_o you_o and_o dull_a inconsideration_n of_o the_o consequence_n of_o your_o doctrine_n to_o boast_v as_o you_o do_v cap._n 3._o n._n 40._o that_o by_o scripture_n you_o can_v confute_v the_o church_n which_o teach_v you_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n aswell_o say_v you_o as_o of_o my_o master_n in_o physic_n or_o the_o mathematics_n i_o may_v learn_v those_o rule_n and_o principle_n by_o which_o i_o may_v confute_v his_o erroneous_a conclusion_n thus_o you_o who_o very_o be_v such_o a_o master_n you_o speak_v of_o for_o you_o deliver_v rule_n and_o principle_n by_o which_o you_o may_v be_v confute_v yourself_o for_o do_v not_o you_o often_o inculcate_v this_o principle_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o by_o tradition_n only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n if_o then_o you_o prove_v by_o scripture_n any_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n you_o shall_v not_o prove_v that_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o you_o have_v no_o sure_a ground_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o you_o be_v unwise_a to_o believe_v it_o upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o tradition_n as_o you_o say_v you_o do_v for_o the_o rule_n which_o may_v be_v false_a in_o one_o thing_n can_v be_v a_o sure_a ground_n of_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n may_v i_o learn_v this_o lesson_n of_o my_o good_a master_n your_o book_n which_o be_v your_o scholar_n have_v teach_v i_o many_o rule_n and_o principle_n by_o which_o i_o may_v confute_v his_o master_n pag._n ●5_n lin_v 23._o the_o mean_n to_o decide_v controversy_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n must_v be_v endue_v with_o universal_a infallibility_n in_o whatsoever_o it_o propound_v as_o a_o divine_a truth_n for_o if_o it_o may_v be_v false_a in_o one_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n we_o can_v yield_v unto_o it_o but_o a_o waver_a and_o fearful_a assent_n in_o any_o thing_n thus_o you_o wherefore_o if_o tradition_n be_v not_o endue_v with_o universal_a infallibility_n if_o it_o may_v be_v false_a in_o any_o one_o thing_n it_o propose_v for_o divine_a truth_n it_o can_v be_v believe_v with_o firm_a assent_n in_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o now_o the_o principle_n of_o physic_n or_o mathematics_n be_v believe_v because_o evident_a of_o themselves_o and_o not_o upon_o the_o bare_a word_n tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o master_n for_o a_o scholar_n if_o he_o be_v not_o assure_v of_o those_o rule_n &_o principle_n otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o master_n can_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o rule_n and_o principle_n prove_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o master_n but_o only_o against_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o fool_n either_o in_o believe_v these_o rule_n upon_o his_o master_n bare_a word_n or_o else_o in_o think_v he_o can_v by_o those_o rule_v convince_v his_o master_n of_o falsehood_n in_o like_a sort_n you_o show_v small_a judgement_n &_o discretion_n who_o persuade_v yourself_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v some_o church-tradition_n to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o scripture_n which_o scripture_n you_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o universal_a church_n tradition_n for_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o implicatory_a as_o any_o consider_a man_n will_v see_v wherefore_o not_o only_a scripture_n but_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n &_o consequent_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o confute_v any_o church-tradition_n by_o scripture_n the_o three_o conviction_n 12._o this_o conviction_n be_v ground_v on_o this_o truth_n that_o unlearned_a man_n can_v be_v assure_v they_o have_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n or_o the_o true_a translation_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n this_o you_o affirm_v pag._n 79._o lin_v 7._o 36._o 2._o edit_fw-la pag._n 75._o lin_v 36._o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o abhorrent_n from_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o repugnant_a to_o it_o to_o suffer_v a_o ignorant_a lie_v man_n soul_n to_o perish_v mere_o for_o be_v mislead_v by_o a_o indiscernible_a false_a translation_n which_o yet_o be_v commend_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o church_n which_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o credit_v some_o in_o this_o matter_n he_o have_v reason_n to_o rely_v upon_o either_o above_o all_o other_o or_o as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o as_o it_o be_v to_o damn_v a_o penitent_a sinner_n for_o a_o secret_a defect_n in_o that_o desire_a absolution_n thus_o you_o from_o which_o i_o convince_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n second_o that_o the_o church_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v still_o visible_a and_o infallible_a in_o guide_a man_n to_o heaven_n the_o first_o i_o prove_v in_o this_o fort_n the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v for_o the_o capacity_n of_o all_o man_n aswell_o unlearned_a as_o learned_a simple_a as_o judicious_a occupy_v in_o worldly_a affair_n as_o disoccupied_a the_o only_a rule_n i_o say_v must_v be_v able_a to_o assure_v all_o man_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o text_n and_o the_o translation_n thereof_o be_v not_o corrupt_v in_o any_o substantial_a matter_n but_o scripture_n be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v this_o as_o you_o do_v confess_v and_o consequent_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o man_n unlearned_a man_n of_o mean_a capacity_n man_n occupy_v in_o worldly_a affair_n trust_v the_o church_n ergo_fw-la not_o scripture_n alone_o but_o scripture_n join_v unto_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 13._o second_o that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o a_o infallible_a guide_n i_o prove_v you_o say_v it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o suffer_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o perish_v for_o their_o trust_v the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o trust_v above_o all_o other_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o trust_v some_o if_o this_o be_v true_a and_o it_o be_v most_o true_a than_o god_n be_v bind_v in_o his_o goodness_n to_o provide_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v trust_v above_o all_o other_o be_v not_o so_o bid_v as_o it_o can_v without_o extreme_a difficulty_n be_v find_v nor_o fallible_a that_o it_o can_v without_o extreme_a danger_n be_v trust_v 4._o 2._o edit_fw-la cap._n 6._o n._n 20._o pag._n 322._o li._n
mistress_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n even_o by_o essence_n that_o she_o can_v no_o more_o depart_v from_o teach_v propose_v and_o maintain_v all_o fundamental_a christian_a doctrine_n then_o from_o her_o own_o be_v nor_o do_v you_o only_o so_o affirm_v the_o church_n essential_a infallibility_n in_o teach_v all_o fundamental_o but_o also_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o propose_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o build_v on_o the_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v for_o these_o word_n at_o least_o evince_n as_o you_o confess_v cap._n 3._o n._n 70._o that_o there_o shall_v still_o continue_v a_o true_a church_n and_o bring_v forth_o child_n unto_o god_n &_o send_v soul_n to_o heaven_n which_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o she_o do_v always_o without_o fail_v teach_v all_o necessary_a truth_n &_o so_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o 4._o now_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n infallible_a that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o teach_v fundamental_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o note_v and_o number_v the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o open_o grant_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v consequent_a thereupon_o which_o be_v such_o as_o no_o more_o can_v have_v be_v desire_v a_o sicilian_a nobleman_n when_o scipio_n praetor_n of_o that_o country_n offer_v he_o one_o wealthy_a and_o talkative_a but_o of_o little_a wit_n for_o advocate_n of_o his_o cause_n reply_v i_o pray_v you_o sir_n give_v this_o man_n for_o advocate_n to_o my_o adversary_n and_o then_o i_o will_v be_v content_a to_o have_v no_o advocate_n at_o all_o so_o we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n about_o the_o totall_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o salvation_n controvert_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v abandon_v by_o learned_a protestant_n none_o presume_v to_o appear_v against_o evident_a truth_n so_o clear_o demonstrate_v by_o charity_n maintain_v it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n good_a luck_n you_o shall_v prefer_v yourself_o and_o be_v admit_v for_o their_o advocate_n for_o you_o speak_v so_o wise_o so_o pertinent_o so_o coherent_o for_o protestant_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n need_v not_o any_o other_o advocate_n in_o her_o behalf_n no_o catholic_a patron_n no_o learned_a man_n howsoever_o well_o see_v in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n nay_o the_o author_n of_o charity_n maintain_v himself_o can_v not_o have_v speak_v more_o full_o ground_o unanswerable_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n than_o you_o have_v do_v while_o you_o be_v persuade_v that_o you_o plead_v against_o she_o as_o appear_v by_o these_o conclusion_n the_o deduction_n whereof_o be_v confess_v and_o express_v by_o yourself_o 5._o first_o there_o be_v ever_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a church_n visible_a and_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n that_o all_o man_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o please_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o she_o preach_v over_o the_o world_n this_o you_o grant_v in_o say_v that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o than_o this_o know_a infallibility_n must_v be_v settle_v in_o some_o know_a society_n of_o christian_n by_o adhere_v to_o which_o guide_n man_n may_v be_v guide_v to_o believe_v aright_o in_o all_o fundamental_o 2.4_o 1._o tim._n 2.4_o no_o be_v the_o apostle_n say_v god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n and_o consequent_o he_o will_v have_v the_o mean_n which_o propose_v all_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n infallible_o guide_v man_n to_o heaven_n to_o be_v sisible_a &_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n as_o all_o man_n may_v come_v to_o see_v she_o and_o learn_v of_o she_o and_o be_v save_v if_o they_o will_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n jesus_n 6._o second_o this_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o must_v be_v likewise_o infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o sequel_n according_a to_o your_o good_a custom_n you_o both_o deny_v and_o grant_v you_o deny_v it_o pag._n 177._o saying_n that_o the_o church_n though_o she_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o rock_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n yet_o not_o the_o rock_n and_o ground_n or_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o all_o profitable_a truth_n but_o may_v err_v and_o maintain_v damnable_a error_n against_o it_o but_o pag._n 105._o n._n 139._o you_o grant_v the_o consequence_n say_v to_o grant_v any_o church_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o will_v be_v to_o make_v it_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o cap._n 3._o n._n 36._o you_o say_v the_o church_n except_o she_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n we_o can_v believe_v she_o in_o nothing_o upon_o her_o word_n and_o authority_n which_o you_o prove_v by_o this_o demonstration_n unanswerable_o because_o say_v you_o a_o authority_n subject_a to_o error_n can_v be_v no_o firm_a and_o stable_a foundation_n of_o my_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o if_o it_o be_v in_o any_o thing_n than_o this_o authority_n be_v one_o &_o the_o same_o in_o all_o proposal_n i_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o reason_n to_o believe_v all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o believe_v one_o and_o therefore_o must_v do_v unreasonable_o either_o in_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n upon_o the_o sole_a warrant_n of_o this_o authority_n or_o else_o in_o not_o believe_v all_o thing_n equal_o warrant_v by_o it_o behold_v how_o earnest_o you_o aver_v and_o forcible_o demonstrate_v what_o before_o you_o do_v so_o peremptory_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o some_o truth_n to_o wit_n of_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o all_o save_a truth_n because_o a_o church_n subject_a to_o error_n in_o some_o thing_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n and_o firm_a foundation_n of_o my_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o 7._o three_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n to_o which_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o propose_v teach_v and_o maintain_v all_o necessary_a truth_n be_v one_o society_n of_o christian_n notorious_o know_v by_o subordination_n to_o one_o universal_a visible_a head_n or_o pastor_n this_o you_o grant_v say_v that_o a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o such_o a_o church_n as_o shall_v always_o without_o fail_v be_v the_o pillar_n ground_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n must_v be_v one_o know_v society_n of_o christian_n by_o adhere_v to_o which_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v gurd_v aright_o to_o believe_v all_o fundamental_o one_o certain_a society_n of_o man_n by_o who_o we_o be_v certain_a they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o one_o certain_a society_n of_o christian_n which_o may_v be_v know_v by_o adhere_v to_o such_o a_o bishop_n as_o their_o head_n 8._o four_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a church_n in_o all_o her_o doctrine_n you_o suppose_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o preexamination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n controvert_v but_o by_o evidence_n of_o the_o mark_n of_o subordination_n to_o one_o visible_a head_n find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o who_o teach_v we_o be_v lead_v to_o all_o necessary_a truth_n if_o we_o follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n these_o four_o sequels_fw-fr you_o teach_v to_o be_v involue_v and_o contain_v in_o your_o grant_n that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o even_o by_o ss●nce_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n the_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o maynteyner_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n whence_o we_o shall_v in_o the_o sixth_o and_o seven_o chapter_n infer_v the_o total_a overthrow_n of_o your_o cause_n and_o show_v salvation_n to_o be_v impossible_a against_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n the_o second_o conviction_n 9_o for_o the_o total_a infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o propose_v this_o syllogism_n out_o of_o your_o say_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n none_o can_v be_v lawful_a judge_n but_o such_o as_o be_v for_o that_o office_n appoint_v of_o god_n nor_o any_o fit_a for_o it_o but_o such_o as_o be_v infallible_a but_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v lawful_a judge_n endue_v with_o authority_n to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o religion_n ergo_fw-la she_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n and_o make_v by_o he_o fit_a for_o that_o office_n that_o be_v infallible_a in_o this_o syllogism_n as_o in_o the_o former_a both_o proposition_n be_v your_o own_o the_o mayor_n you_o delyver_v pag._n 60._o n._n 21._o for_o the_o decide_n of_o civil_a controversy_n man_n may_v appoint_v themselves_o a_o judge_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n
you_o in_o which_o speech_n your_o word_n interfere_v gall_v each_o other_o ankle_n destroy_v themselves_o for_o to_o say_v who_o can_v deny_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o most_o catholic_n that_o this_o text_n be_v understand_v of_o sacramental_a eat_n and_o drink_v do_v imply_v that_o many_o catholic_n and_o with_o they_o most_o of_o protestant_n deny_v it_o and_o consequent_o who_o can_v deny_v it_o according_a to_o most_o be_v as_o wise_a a_o speech_n as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v a_o most_o undeniable_a by_o many_o just_o deny_v truth_n for_o do_v not_o you_o write_v preface_n n._n 30._o in_o fine_a there_o be_v no_o more_o certain_a sign_n that_o a_o point_n be_v not_o evident_a than_o that_o honest_a and_o understanding_n and_o in_o different_a man_n and_o such_o as_o give_v themselves_o liberty_n of_o judgement_n after_o a_o mature_a deliberation_n differ_v about_o it_o 25._o three_o you_o urge_v scripture_n as_o plain_a against_o latin_a service_n say_v cap._n 3._o n._n 21._o &_o n._n 71._o it_o be_v a_o plain_a revelation_n of_o god_n that_o the_o public_a prayer_n and_o hymn_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v in_o such_o a_o language_n as_o be_v most_o for_o edification_n yet_o these_o revelation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o see_v etc._n etc._n i_o omit_v that_o you_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n by_o add_v to_o the_o text_n the_o word_n most_o and_o pag._n 173._o lin_v 3._o you_o cite_v these_o as_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o use_v a_o language_n which_o the_o assistant_n general_o understand_v not_o be_v not_o for_o edification_n which_o be_v scripture_n verbatim_o coin_a and_o forge_a in_o your_o own_o head_n i_o pretermit_v also_o so_o many_o clear_a and_o full_o satisfy_v answer_n give_v by_o catholic_n which_v you_o do_v not_o mention_n much_o less_o confute_v i_o will_v show_v that_o you_o behead_v this_o your_o argument_n with_o your_o own_o sword_n do_v not_o you_o say_v cap._n 3._o n._n 32._o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o writing_n deliver_v some_o thing_n as_o the_o dictate_v of_o human_a reason_n and_o prudence_n and_o not_o as_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o you_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v take_v they_o to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n this_o suppose_a i_o assume_v but_o s._n paul_n deliver_v this_o order_n that_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n be_v not_o best_o for_o edification_n and_o decency_n as_o a_o dictate_v of_o humane_a reason_n and_o prudence_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o his_o discourse_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v take_v it_o as_o a_o divine_a revelation_n upon_o your_o word_n we_o believe_v it_o indeed_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v judge_v that_o observance_n most_o for_o edification_n and_o decency_n in_o those_o time_n when_o latin_a &_o greek_a be_v vulgar_a language_n almost_o every_o where_n common_o know_v of_o all_o since_o his_o time_n the_o latin_a be_v not_o know_v and_o vulgar_a in_o every_o country_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n as_o it_o be_v before_o whether_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o latin_a ought_v to_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o universal_a language_n for_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v a_o question_n not_o decide_v by_o divine_a revelation_n but_o to_o be_v decide_v by_o human_a reason_n and_o prudence_n for_o it_o be_v different_a in_o state_n and_o quality_n from_o that_o decide_v by_o the_o apostle_n such_o kind_n of_o dictate_v of_o human_a reason_n be_v variable_a according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n place_n person_n custom_n add_v that_o latin_a which_o most_o man_n of_o better_a education_n and_o quality_n understand_v and_o all_o churchman_n understand_v can_v be_v term_v a_o language_n unknown_a in_o the_o church_n yea_o rather_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v unknown_a and_o barbarous_a in_o the_o christian_a church_n 26._o four_o against_o infallible_a judge_n place_n judge_n cap._n 4._o nu_fw-la 16._o lin_v 23._o ca._n 4_o n._n 53_o cap._n 6._o n._n 61._o &_o in_o many_o other_o place_n in_o the_o church_n since_o the_o a_o postle_n you_o come_v forth_o every_o foot_n with_o this_o scripture_n be_v not_o call_v master_n upon_o earth_n for_o one_o be_v your_o maistere_n christ_n the_o vanity_n of_o which_o objection_n i_o demonstrate_v by_o this_o syllogis_n i_o wherein_o both_o proposition_n be_v your_o own_o and_o most_o infallible_a truth_n the_o apostle_n 155._o apostle_n cap._n 2._o n._n 155._o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n about_o faith_n so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v the_o master_n doctor_n guide_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o a_o postle_n herein_o do_v not_o transgress_v the_o command_n give_v they_o by_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o call_v master_n on_o earth_n ergo_fw-la to_o be_v and_o to_o be_v call_v judge_n and_o master_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n and_o subordinate_a unto_o he_o be_v not_o against_o that_o precept_n of_o our_o lord_n 27._o i_o conclude_v this_o argument_n request_v you_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o inspectour_n of_o heart_n as_o you_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o such_o to_o ruminate_v and_o ponder_v your_o own_o say_n it_o import_v every_o man_n who_o separate_v from_o any_o church_n communion_n even_o as_o much_o as_o his_o salvation_n be_v worth_a to_o look_v most_o careful_o that_o the_o case_n of_o his_o separation_n be_v just_a and_o necessary_a the_o cause_n pretend_v of_o your_o separation_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n against_o her_o custom_n the_o strong_a testimony_n you_o do_v or_o can_v pretend_v be_v these_o by_o i_o now_o answer_v than_o which_o you_o say_v there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o plain_a now_o can_v you_o think_v in_o conscience_n that_o the_o former_a testimony_n be_v clear_a evident_a necessary_a such_o as_o necessitate_v convince_v and_o compel_v the_o understanding_n to_o assent_v can_v you_o presume_v you_o shall_v be_v so_o eloquent_a at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n as_o to_o make_v our_o lord_n believe_v you_o be_v so_o simple_a and_o of_o so_o little_a judgement_n as_o you_o do_v real_o and_o in_o conscience_n undoubted_o believe_v that_o these_o text_n be_v evident_a necessary_a formal_a express_a as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n think_v of_o it_o i_o pray_v you_o for_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n it_o concern_v you_o and_o every_o protestant_n as_o much_o as_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v worth_a the_o seven_o conviction_n 27._o you_o forsake_v the_o roman_a and_o the_o catholic_a external_a communion_n not_o only_o without_o just_a cause_n but_o without_o as_o much_o as_o a_o seem_a cause_n even_o against_o your_o conscience_n out_o of_o hatred_n of_o know_a truth_n what_o be_v damnable_a schism_n if_o this_o be_v not_o that_o you_o go_v against_o your_o conscience_n and_o impugn_v know_v truth_n though_o you_o be_v very_o loath_a this_o mystery_n of_o your_o heart_n shall_v be_v disclose_v yet_o such_o be_v your_o inconsideration_n as_o you_o profess_v it_o open_o enough_o in_o word_n but_o practise_v the_o same_o much_o more_o open_o in_o deed_n cap._n 2._o n._n 47_o in_o fine_a the_o rest_n of_o this_o paragraph_n i_o be_o as_o willing_a it_o shall_v be_v true_a as_o you_o be_v to_o have_v it_o and_o so_o let_v it_o pass_v as_o a_o discourse_n wherein_o we_o be_v whole_o unconcern_v you_o may_v have_v meet_v with_o a_o adversary_n that_o will_v not_o have_v suffer_v you_o to_o have_v say_v so_o much_o truth_n together_o but_o to_o i_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n these_o be_v your_o word_n in_o which_o you_o lay_v the_o inside_n of_o your_o heart_n outward_o and_o plain_o discover_v your_o wifull_a aversion_n from_o know_a truth_n you_o suffer_v chary_o maintain_v to_o speak_v so_o much_o truth_n together_o why_o do_v you_o so_o not_o because_o it_o be_v truth_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o be_v it_o make_v not_o against_o you_o &_o so_o you_o be_v willing_a it_o shall_v be_v true_a and_o do_v not_o this_o imply_v that_o have_v that_o part_n of_o the_o paragraph_n make_v against_o you_o have_v you_o be_v unwilling_a it_o shall_v have_v be_v true_a you_o will_v not_o have_v endure_v it_o you_o will_v have_v impugn_a it_o with_o all_o might_n and_o main_n though_o it_o have_v be_v truth_n never_o so_o much_o have_v you_o say_v you_o may_v have_v meet_v with_o a_o adversary_n that_o will_v not_o have_v suffer_v you_o to_o have_v say_v so_o much_o untruth_n together_o but_o to_o i_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n this_o have_v be_v some_o courtesy_n of_o forbearance_n but_o to_o say_v that_o you_o will_v not_o suffer_v so_o much_o
communion_n in_o one_o kind_n for_o layman_n be_v not_o practise_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n give_v unto_o the_o two_o 24.30.31_o two_o luc._n 24.30.31_o lay_v disciple_n in_o emmaus_n be_v not_o the_o latin_a service_n every_o where_n in_o use_n during_o the_o primitive_a time_n i_o mean_v 11._o mean_v ang._n lib_n 2_o the_o doctrine_n christ._n c._n 11._o in_o all_o country_n of_o europe_n and_o africa_n which_o do_v pertain_v to_o the_o latin_a part_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o purgatory_n believe_v and_o 12._o and_o machab_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o prayer_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o dead_a practise_v by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n even_o before_o the_o gospel_n be_v write_v do_v not_o etc._n not_o morton_n of_o the_o sacrament_n lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o pag._n 91._o if_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v certain_o true_a in_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n then_o be_v we_o to_o yield_v transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n protestant_n profess_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v as_o true_a and_o ancient_a as_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v certain_o true_a in_o the_o plain_a and_o proper_a sense_n and_o be_v not_o his_o word_n true_a in_o that_o sense_n he_o speak_v they_o though_o the_o same_o be_v never_o so_o high_a obscure_a &_o to_o human_a understanding_n incomprehensible_a but_o your_o discourse_n though_o always_o without_o horn_n of_o conviction_n of_o what_o you_o object_n to_o we_o you_o will_v be_v sure_a it_o shall_v never_o be_v without_o horn_n of_o stiff_a and_o direct_a contradiction_n against_o yourself_o for_o even_o this_o short_a period_n have_v two_o horn_n of_o this_o kind_n first_o where_o you_o say_v we_o damn_v all_o to_o hell_n fire_n that_o any_o way_n differ_v from_o we_o whereas_o more_o than_o forty_o time_n in_o your_o book_n you_o say_v you_o we_o you_o pag._n 404._o lin_v 7._o we_o censure_v your_o error_n as_o heavy_o as_o you_o do_v we_o damn_v we_o to_o hell_n as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v you_o and_o that_o we_o grant_v save_v grant_v pag._n 283._o n._n 74._o lin_v 15._o you_o yourself_o affirm_v that_o ignorant_a protestant_n die_v with_o contrition_n may_v be_v save_v salvation_n to_o protestant_n as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v to_o us._n second_o you_o say_v here_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o sole_a and_o adequate_a object_n of_o your_o faith_n but_o else_o where_o you_o say_v often_o that_o it_o be_v no_o object_n of_o your_o faith_n at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o mean_n of_o believe_v cap._n 2._o n._n 32._o lin_v 5._o scripture_n contain_v all_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n be_v none_o but_o only_a the_o mean_n of_o convey_v they_o to_o us._n 14._o now_o to_o our_o purpose_n i_o take_v out_o of_o your_o dunghill_n this_o gem_n of_o clear_a and_o manifest_a truth_n worthy_a of_o s._n austin_n his_o divine_a wit_n and_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n which_o prefer_v authority_n which_o be_v evident_o credible_a of_o itself_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n must_v not_o consist_v of_o a_o few_o but_o be_v diffuse_v and_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n nor_o of_o turbulent_a person_n that_o be_v full_a of_o discord_n and_o contention_n one_o against_o another_o but_o all_o agree_n in_o full_a unity_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n not_o a_o new_a church_n found_v in_o after_o time_n but_o institute_v by_o the_o bless_a apostle_n adorn_v with_o a_o illustrious_a succession_n of_o know_a bishop_n to_o this_o present_a which_o be_v the_o very_a mayor_n proposition_n of_o my_o argument_n which_o be_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n that_o be_v the_o teacher_n always_o without_o fail_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n must_v be_v both_o of_o one_o denomination_n and_o catholic_n that_o be_v universal_o apostolical_a by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o every_o where_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o such_o but_o a_o company_n of_o a_o few_o in_o one_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n divide_v into_o innumerable_a faction_n and_o sect_n found_v not_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o only_o yesterday_o or_o within_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n it_o can_v prefer_v no_o authority_n 15._o now_o 10._o ecclesia_fw-la totum_fw-la poffidet_fw-la quod_fw-la a_o viro_fw-la accepit_fw-la in_o dotem_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la congregatio_fw-la cuiustibet_fw-la haeresis_fw-la in_o angulis_fw-la sedet_fw-la concubina_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la matrona_fw-la augustin_n l._n 4._o the_o symb_n c._n 10._o what_o more_o evident_a than_o the_o minor_a of_o my_o former_a argument_n no_o church_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o roman_a be_v adorn_v with_o these_o glorious_a mark_n she_o wing_v the_o evident_a credibility_n of_o that_o church_n in_o which_o they_o be_v for_o dare_v you_o say_v your_o protest_v church_n be_v dilate_v over_o the_o word_n be_v it_o not_o confine_v to_o one_o corner_n of_o europe_n and_o reign_v most_o in_o the_o climate_n which_o be_v most_o north_n quod_fw-la latus_fw-la mundi_fw-la nebulae_fw-la malusque_fw-la jupiter_n urget_fw-la can_v you_o say_v that_o your_o church_n be_v one_o &_o the_o same_o every_o where_n and_o not_o divide_v into_o turbulent_a faction_n and_o iect_n do_v not_o you_o say_v 12._o say_v pag._n 90._o lin_v 12._o there_o be_v among_o they_o infinite_a variance_n and_o king_n james_n 65._o james_n against_o d._n vorstius_n pag._n 65._o a_o infinite_a diversity_n of_o sect_n agree_v in_o nothing_o but_o in_o union_n against_o the_o pope_n can_v you_o say_v it_o be_v apostolical_a have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o you_o confess_v it_o begin_v but_o yesterday_o by_o devide_v themselves_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o whole_a catholic_a church_n 16._o on_o the_o other_o side_n can_v you_o deny_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n to_o be_v in_o europe_n africa_n asia_n america_n &_o almost_o in_o all_o country_n of_o these_o four_o quatre_n of_o the_o world_n every_o where_n famous_o know_v that_o every_o man_n that_o will_v be_v save_v may_v come_v to_o this_o rock_n &_o be_v build_v thereon_o unto_o everlasting_a salvation_n for_o what_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 53._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v like_o the_o frog_n in_o the_o fable_n who_o think_v the_o ditch_n he_o live_v in_o to_o be_v all_o the_o world_n be_v a_o speech_n not_o of_o truth_n and_o reason_n but_o of_o prejudice_n &_o passion_n which_o education_n have_v instill_v into_o you_o the_o passion_n i_o say_v and_o custom_n of_o lie_v and_o utter_v any_o falsehood_n or_o scornful_a reproach_n that_o may_v disgrace_v the_o roman_a church_n this_o you_o do_v without_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n because_o you_o say_v you_o be_v sure_a without_o doubt_n 19_o pag._n 137._o n._n 19_o god_n will_v not_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o you_o for_o such_o passion_n which_o custom_n and_o education_n have_v make_v to_o you_o unavoydahle_fw-mi which_o i_o will_v believe_v if_o you_o can_v make_v i_o sure_o that_o god_n do_v not_o damn_v to_o hell_n nero_n domitian_n and_o such_o other_o monster_n for_o their_o pride_n and_o contempt_n of_o god_n and_o preiudices_fw-la against_o religion_n which_o by_o education_n and_o custom_n be_v to_o they_o all_o thing_n consider_v unavoidable_a 17._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v also_o apostolical_a by_o a_o notorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n that_o we_o may_v with_o s._n austyn_n donati_n austyn_n aug._n in_o psal_n contra_fw-la partem_fw-la donati_n say_v to_o you_o number_v the_o bishop_n succeed_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n this_o be_v the_o rock_n the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o conquer_v this_o church_n be_v also_o the_o same_o every_o where_n in_o all_o the_o professor_n thereof_o for_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o you_o confess_v pag._n 129._o and_o very_o witty_o and_o pretty_o contradict_v yourself_o within_o few_o line_n in_o that_o pag._n 129._o n._n 4._o you_o speak_v to_o we_o if_o you_o say_v you_o do_v agree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o say_v this_o be_v ridiculous_a for_o you_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v those_o thing_n wherein_o you_o agree_v so_o that_o to_o say_v you_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o say_v you_o agree_v in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o you_o do_v agree_v but_o you_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o only_o those_o thing_n wherein_o you_o agree_v be_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o protestant_n if_o they_o be_v wise_n will_v do_v so_o to_o sure_o i_o be_o they_o have_v reason_n enough_o to_o do_v so_o see_v all_o of_o they_o agree_v with_o explicit_a faith_n in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o and_o undoubted_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n thus_o you_o be_v not_o this_o a_o wise_a discourse_n of_o a_o man_n who_o
be_v decide_v for_o christian_n affirmative_o by_o another_o principle_n or_o direction_n beside_o natural_a wit_n and_o judgement_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o judge_v all_o controversy_n by_o 3._o if_o you_o reply_v that_o the_o question_n which_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a be_v indeed_o determine_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o not_o only_o by_o it_o without_o the_o concurence_n of_o natural_a reason_n this_o evasion_n be_v stop_v by_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 2._o n._n 2d_o lin_v 26._o the_o question_n whether_o such_o or_o such_o a_o book_n be_v canonical_a scripture_n though_o it_o may_v be_v decide_v negative_o out_o of_o scripture_n by_o show_v apparent_a and_o inreconcileable_a contradiction_n between_o it_o and_o some_o other_o book_n confess_o canonical_a yet_o affirmative_o it_o can_v be_v decide_v but_o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n behold_v the_o controversy_n wherein_o scripture_n be_v the_o subject_n can_v be_v decide_v affirmative_o by_o any_o rule_n or_o principle_n but_o by_o tradition_n only_o that_o be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n a_o rule_n distinct_a from_o that_o of_o natural_a wit_n and_o judgement_n 4._o you_o will_v say_v yea_o you_o do_v say_v that_o tradition_n though_o a_o principle_n distinct_a from_o reason_n yet_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v by_o itself_o without_o the_o support_n of_o natural_a reason_n cap._n 2._o n._n 31._o though_o scripture_n be_v a_o principle_n most_o know_v in_o christianity_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o tradition_n be_v a_o principle_n more_o know_v than_o scripture_n but_o to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o principle_n not_o in_o christianity_n but_o in_o reason_n not_o proper_a to_o christian_n but_o common_a to_o all_o man_n and_o cap._n 2._o n._n 114._o you_o will_v have_v man_n follow_v authority_n on_o god_n name_n let_v they_o we_o also_o will_v have_v they_o follow_v authority_n for_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o universal_a tradition_n that_o we_o will_v have_v they_o believe_v the_o scripture_n but_o then_o as_o for_o the_o authority_n you_o follow_v you_o will_v let_v they_o see_v reason_n why_o they_o shall_v follow_v it_o and_o be_v not_o this_o to_o go_v a_o little_a about_o to_o leave_v reason_n for_o a_o short_a time_n &_o then_o to_o come_v to_o it_o again_o and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o you_o condemn_v in_o other_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o plain_a impossibility_n to_o submit_v reason_n but_o to_o reason_n for_o he_o that_o do_v it_o to_o authority_n must_v of_o necessity_n think_v himself_o to_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o authority_n thus_o you_o and_o though_o you_o often_o iterate_v this_o falsehood_n that_o tradition_n be_v not_o rest_v upon_o for_o itself_o but_o prove_v by_o reason_n yet_o you_o do_v as_o often_o inculcate_v the_o contrary_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n evident_a of_o itself_o independent_o of_o any_o reason_n beside_o that_o credit_n it_o have_v of_o itself_o cap._n 2._o n._n 155._o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o absolute_o perfect_a rule_n but_o as_o perfect_a as_o a_o write_a rule_n can_v be_v which_o must_v always_o need_v something_o else_o which_o be_v evident_o true_a or_o evident_o credible_a to_o give_v attestation_n to_o it_o and_o that_o in_o this_o case_n be_v universal_a tradition_n so_o that_o universal_a tradition_n be_v the_o rule_n to_o judge_v all_o controversy_n by_o cap._n 2._o n._n 25._o lin_v 3._o we_o believe_v not_o this_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonicll_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n but_o upon_o the_o credibility_n of_o universal_a tradition_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n credible_a of_o itself_o and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o be_v rest_v on_o cap._n 4._o n._n 53._o lin_v 26._o you_o say_v that_o charity_n maintain_v though_o he_o differ_v from_o d._n potter_n in_o many_o thing_n yet_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o this_o that_o tradition_n be_v such_o a_o principle_n as_o may_v be_v rest_v on_o and_o require_v no_o other_o proof_n 5._o by_o these_o late_a text_n of_o clear_a truth_n i_o convince_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o former_a that_o tradition_n universal_a be_v not_o a_o principle_n in_o christianity_n but_o in_o reason_n nor_o proper_a to_o christian_n but_o common_a to_o all_o man_n how_o can_v tradition_n universal_a that_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o all_o former_a christian_a age_n to_o this_o present_a be_v a_o rule_n to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n among_o christian_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o christianity_n but_o in_o preason_n only_o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o tradition_n be_v a_o principle_n not_o proper_a to_o christian_n but_o common_a to_o all_o man_n i_o wonder_v what_o miss_v of_o disaffection_n against_o this_o truth_n can_v be_v so_o thick_a between_o your_o understanding_n and_o it_o as_o to_o hide_v it_o from_o your_o sight_n be_v not_o tradition_n universal_a from_o the_o apostle_n a_o rule_n of_o belief_n proper_a to_o christian_n that_o be_v for_o christian_n only_o do_v any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n but_o christian_n believe_v doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a institution_n and_o law_n holy_a and_o pious_a because_o they_o be_v deliver_v as_o such_o by_o full_a consent_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o but_o christian_n admit_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o tradition_n as_o such_o how_o then_o be_v not_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o principle_n proper_a to_o christient_a but_o common_a to_o all_o man_n you_o will_v say_v infidel_n also_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o so_o tradition_n be_v a_o principle_n which_o christian_n have_v common_a with_o they_o i_o answer_v in_o like_a manner_n infidel_n believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o writing_n of_o their_o ancestor_n will_v you_o then_o say_v that_o apostolical_a scripture_n be_v not_o a_o principle_n proper_a to_o christian_n but_o common_a to_o all_o man_n if_o not_o i_o hope_v than_o you_o will_v easy_o understand_v that_o though_o profane_a tradition_n be_v a_o principle_n with_o infidel_n yet_o apostolical_a tradition_n may_v be_v &_o be_v a_o principle_n proper_a to_o christian_n 6._o the_o principle_n whereby_o you_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n be_v resolve_v into_o reason_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v submit_v his_o reason_n but_o to_o reason_n for_o he_o that_o do_v it_o to_o authority_n must_v of_o necessity_n think_v himself_o to_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o authority_n this_o principle_n i_o say_v be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o impious_a for_o according_a to_o it_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n except_o he_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v it_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o than_o he_o submit_v his_o natural_a reason_n not_o unto_o reason_n but_o unto_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v thing_n far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o reason_n 7._o i_o conclude_v the_o principal_a intent_n of_o this_o chapter_n with_o a_o demonstration_n from_o your_o contradiction_n that_o with_o christian_n the_o authority_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v not_o a_o principle_n in_o reason_n but_o of_o christian_a faith_n above_o reason_n able_a to_o command_v reason_n to_o believe_v even_o what_o may_v seem_v repugnant_a to_o reason_n you_o affirm_v that_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v many_o irreconcilable_a contradiction_n to_o the_o seem_n of_o reason_n ca._n 3._o n._n 19_o in_o all_o the_o controversy_n of_o protestant_n there_o be_v a_o seem_a conflict_n of_o scripture_n with_o scripture_n and_o cap._n 1._o n._n 13_o lin_v 26._o the_o contrary_a belief_n may_v be_v concern_v point_n wherein_o scripture_n may_v with_o so_o great_a probability_n be_v allege_v on_o both_o side_n that_o true_a lover_n of_o god_n and_o truth_n may_v without_o any_o fault_n some_o go_v one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o and_o some_o and_o those_o as_o good_a as_o either_o of_o the_o former_a suspend_v their_o judgement_n and_o expect_v some_o elias_n to_o reconcile_v the_o repugnancy_n now_o reason_n can_v but_o feel_v much_o difficulty_n and_o repugnance_n to_o believe_v a_o book_n full_a of_o seem_a contradiction_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o contain_v nothing_o but_o infallible_a truth_n and_o yet_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o you_o profess_v with_o they_o do_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n &_o every_o word_n &_o syllable_n thereof_o to_o be_v infallible_a truth_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o seem_a contradiction_n which_o most_o of_o
christian_n know_v not_o how_o to_o compose_v but_o must_v expect_v some_o elias_n to_o reconcile_v they_o ergo_fw-la they_o hold_v and_o you_o profess_v to_o hold_v tradition_n as_o a_o principle_n above_o reason_n and_o so_o high_a in_o authority_n above_o it_o as_o it_o be_v able_a to_o command_v reason_n to_o believe_v what_o to_o the_o seem_n of_o reason_n can_v possible_o be_v true_a thus_o by_o your_o own_o contradiction_n the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v convince_v to_o rest_v final_o not_o on_o reason_n but_o on_o tradition_n a_o principle_n superior_a to_o all_o human_a reason_n the_o second_o conviction_n as_o the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n so_o likewise_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o true_a not_o because_o congruous_a and_o conform_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o natural_a reason_n but_o because_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n unwritten_a this_o truth_n i_o be_o to_o make_v good_a by_o your_o say_n wherein_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o leave_v the_o victory_n to_o that_o part_n of_o your_o contradiction_n which_o stand_v for_o the_o catholic_a side_n 8._o cap._n 2._o n._n 1._o lin_v 24._o you_o reprehend_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o we_o settle_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o that_o which_o seem_v to_o man_n reason_n and_o understanding_n to_o be_v so_o but_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n declare_v to_o be_v so_o by_o tradition_n unwritten_a seem_v it_o never_o so_o unreasonable_a and_o incongruous_a your_o saying_n contradictory_n of_o this_o and_o whereby_o this_o may_v be_v refute_v you_o deliver_v some_o three_o page_n after_o to_o wit_n cap._n 2._o n._n 8._o 8._o 8._o lon._n edit_n p._n 55._o in_o 8._o though_o a_o write_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o we_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n by_o its_o own_o say_n so_o for_o nothing_o be_v prove_v true_a by_o be_v say_v or_o write_v in_o a_o book_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n credible_a of_o itself_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v so_o in_o itself_o etc._n etc._n by_o this_o say_n the_o former_a be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o seem_n of_o man_n reason_n and_o not_o according_a to_o tradition_n or_o doctrine_n unwriten_a if_o nothing_o be_v prove_v true_a by_o be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n unwritten_a than_o no_o doctrine_n or_o sentence_n be_v prove_v true_a because_o write_v in_o a_o book_n of_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n understanding_n but_o only_o because_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n as_o divine_a doctrine_n &_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n consequently_n not_o scripture_n understand_v according_a to_o human_a sense_n and_o reason_n but_o scripture_n understand_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o perpetual_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o christian_a truth_n and_o faith_n 9_o this_o you_o also_o suppose_v preface_n n._n 12._o where_o you_o say_v that_o discourse_v guide_a itself_o only_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n the_o guide_n of_o christian_a faythin_n the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n and_o draw_v consequence_n from_o it_o but_o the_o rule_n be_v right_a reason_n ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n now_o right_a reason_n not_o guide_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a reuclation_n be_v not_o natural_a wit_n nor_o human_a understanding_n but_o dun_a &_o fupernaturall_a sense_n and_o reason_n nor_o can_v our_o reason_n precedent_o unto_o scripture_n be_v ground_v on_o and_o guide_v by_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a revelation_n write_v as_o be_v clear_a frgo_fw-la the_o rule_n to_o prove_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v divine_a truth_n be_v not_o scripture_n understand_v according_a to_o man_n understanding_n according_a to_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n but_o scripture_n understand_v according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a revelation_n unwritten_a to_o wit_n by_o tradition_n which_o be_v you_o say_v credible_a of_o itself_o 10._o this_o resolution_n of_o faith_n final_o and_o last_o not_o into_o natural_a reason_n but_o into_o divine_a revelation_n unwritten_a be_v gather_v from_o the_o say_n of_o s._n peter_n 1.20_o 2._o pet_n 1.20_o no_o prophesy_v of_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v by_o private_a interpretation_n for_o not_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o man_n prophecy_n come_v in_o at_o any_o time_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o discourse_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v demonstrative_a and_o may_v be_v redueed_o to_o this_o syllogistical_a form_n the_o scripture_n can_v be_v interpret_v by_o any_o spirit_n wit_n or_o mind_n inferior_a to_o that_o from_o which_o it_o do_v original_o proceed_v for_o a_o inferior_a spirit_n as_o be_v the_o natural_a wit_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n 2.14_o 1_o cor._n 2.14_o be_v not_o able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o conceive_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n yea_o that_o which_o be_v wisdom_n with_o god_n be_v folly_n with_o man_n but_o all_o holy_a scripture_n proceed_v original_o from_o the_o spirit_n wit_n and_o mind_n of_o god_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v interpret_v that_o be_v the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v true_a or_o false_a by_o the_o seem_n of_o natural_a reason_n or_o wit_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o speak_v in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o sound_n of_o who_o voice_n have_v be_v by_o perpetual_a tradition_n continue_v and_o convey_v unto_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n 11._o nor_o do_v you_o pag._n 95._o lin_v 1._o sufficient_o excuse_v your_o course_n of_o resolution_n from_o be_v private_a interpretation_n condemn_v by_o s._n peter_n where_o you_o say_v be_v there_o not_o a_o manifest_a difference_n between_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n tell_v i_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o such_o a_o text_n which_o no_o man_n can_v possible_o know_v to_o be_v true_a it_o be_v a_o secret_a thing_n and_o between_o say_v these_o and_o these_o reason_n i_o have_v to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o such_o a_o scripture_n reasonn_n be_v a_o public_a and_o certain_a thing_n and_o expose_v to_o all_o man_n trial_n &_o examination_n but_o if_o by_o private_a spirit_n you_o understand_v the_o particular_a reason_n of_o every_o man_n your_o inconvenience_n against_o resolve_v by_o the_o private_a spirit_n will_v be_v reduce_v to_o none_o at_o all_o thus_o you_o understand_v by_o private_a a_o thing_n that_o be_v hide_v secret_a insearchable_a not_o expose_v to_o the_o sight_n and_o examination_n of_o all_o but_o this_o notion_n of_o private_a be_v against_o the_o meaning_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o this_o place_n because_o in_o this_o sense_n even_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v private_a the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v private_a because_o hide_a and_o secret_a not_o to_o be_v discern_v nor_o judge_v by_o the_o natural_a man_n s_o peter_n then_o by_o private_a interpretation_n understand_v interpretation_n make_v by_o private_a man_n who_o have_v no_o public_a authority_n nor_o power_n to_o command_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o your_o particular_a reason_n ay_o william_n chillingworth_n have_v this_o reason_n that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o such_o a_o scripture_n be_v private_a not_o endue_v with_o public_a authority_n nor_o with_o any_o right_a to_o command_v private_a man_n to_o submit_v their_o private_a reason_n and_o judgement_n unto_o you_o ergo_fw-la your_o rule_n of_o interpretation_n ay_o william_n chillingworth_n have_v these_o reason_n for_o this_o sense_n be_v private_a and_o consequent_o of_o no_o authority_n in_o god_n church_n i_o add_v that_o interpretation_n by_o the_o private_a spirit_n that_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o private_a man_n be_v not_o so_o abhorrent_n and_o exorbitant_a from_o truth_n as_o you_o by_o the_o natural_a wit_n of_o every_o man_n for_o extraordinary_o it_o may_v fall_v out_o that_o that_o may_v be_v the_o true_a fence_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o some_o private_a and_o particular_a person_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n which_o seem_v reasonable_a and_o congruous_a to_o human_a understanding_n because_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n seem_v folly_n unto_o the_o natural_a man_n so_o that_o of_o necessity_n in_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o must_v be_v the_o true_a sense_n which_o seem_v unreasonable_a &_o incongruous_a to_o man_n natural_a understanding_n 12._o i_o must_v here_o final_o note_n that_o in_o say_v that_o
you_o to_o do_v we_o courtesy_n impossible_a which_o be_v i_o confess_v troublesome_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o the_o do_v of_o they_o require_v time_n long_o than_o eternity_n only_o we_o will_v beseech_v you_o as_o you_o tender_v the_o good_a of_o your_o soul_n to_o do_v a_o courtesy_n to_o yourself_o very_o possible_a to_o be_v do_v that_o you_o will_v reflect_v that_o you_o be_v a_o man_n witty_a and_o bring_v up_o in_o learning_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a you_o shall_v fall_v into_o such_o contradiction_n as_o these_o be_v be_v not_o the_o hand_n of_o divine_a permission_n therein_o for_o the_o eure_fw-ge of_o your_o capital_a evil_a which_o be_v confidence_n in_o your_o own_o wit_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n as_o of_o a_o company_n of_o only_a blindman_n and_o beast_n it_o be_v not_o weakness_n of_o wit_n but_o dizziness_n of_o pride_n which_o make_v you_o thus_o reel_v in_o your_o writing_n as_o even_o here_o you_o do_v again_o you_o aver_v that_o to_o some_o more_o be_v fundamental_a to_o other_o less_o to_o other_o nothing_o at_o all_o which_o be_v not_o only_o against_o d._n potter_n but_o yourself_o have_v in_o your_o book_n contradict_v it_o i_o be_o sure_a more_o than_o twenty_o time_n as_o cap._n 3._o n._n 20._o lin_v 9_o point_n fundamental_a be_v those_o only_o which_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o command_v to_o be_v prach_v to_o all_o and_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o if_o fundamental_a point_n be_v those_o only_o which_o be_v to_o be_v ●11_n be_v d._n potter_n p._n ●11_n preach_v unto_o all_o and_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o point_v fundamental_a for_o some_o only_a and_o not_o for_o all_o the_o seven_o conviction_n 30._o with_o this_o conviction_n i_o mean_v to_o conclude_v this_o first_o chapter_n and_o answer_v your_o chief_a argument_n against_o our_o ground_v faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o say_v you_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n the_o principle_n we_o build_v on_o be_v not_o evident_a of_o itself_o and_o therefore_o need_v proof_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o tradition_n because_o none_o can_v be_v show_v for_o it_o nor_o by_o scripture_n because_o the_o scripture_n be_v receive_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o the_o church_n must_v be_v believe_v infallible_a before_o we_o believe_v scripture_n wherefore_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n except_o we_o will_v run_v round_o in_o a_o circle_n say_v we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a because_o the_o church_n which_o be_v infallible_a say_v so_o and_z we_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a because_o the_o scripture_n canonical_a say_v so_o to_o get_v out_o of_o this_o circle_n we_o must_v say_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o the_o church_n infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n do_v so_o affirm_v and_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a we_o believe_v because_o our_o natural_a reason_n guide_v by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n and_o prudential_a motive_n do_v persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o this_o argument_n by_o the_o repetition_n whereof_o your_o book_n be_v grow_v into_o a_o great_a bulk_n i_o can_v answer_v by_o retorsion_n and_o show_v that_o you_o be_v force_v to_o dance_v the_o round_a in_o a_o circle_n though_o many_o time_n you_o run_v in_o and_o out_o by_o contradict_v yourself_o but_o i_o will_v not_o go_v so_o far_o about_o i_o answer_v direct_o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v either_o as_o deliver_v tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n or_o as_o define_v controversy_n of_o faith_n which_o for_o the_o present_a arise_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n as_o deliver_v tradition_n be_v not_o prove_v by_o scripture_n nor_o by_o tradition_n but_o be_v evident_a of_o itself_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v tradition_n by_o lively_a voice_n be_v nothing_o else_o 7._o see_v convict_v 1._o n._n 7._o but_o the_o authority_n of_o universal_a tradition_n which_o authority_n you_o grant_v to_o be_v evident_o credible_a of_o itself_o and_o fit_a to_o be_v rest_v on_o and_o on_o what_o principle_n can_v christian_n faith_n rest_n but_o on_o that_o which_o be_v infallible_a by_o rely_v whereon_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v 31._o you_o be_v a_o man_n so_o courteous_a and_o kind_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o her_o sake_n you_o will_v deny_v yourself_o you_o will_v destroy_v your_o own_o writing_n you_o will_v grant_v this_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o plain_a term_n to_o do_v she_o a_o pleasure_n cap._n 2._o n._n 44._o lin_v 6._o there_o be_v no_o repugnance_n but_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a enough_o of_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o certain_a enough_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n unless_o you_o can_v show_v which_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o never_o can_v do_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v always_o a_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n now_o your_o main_a business_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o present_a church_n infallible_a not_o so_o much_o in_o consign_v ancient_a tradition_n as_o in_o define_v emergent_a controversy_n thus_o you_o in_o which_o word_n i_o note_v how_o you_o shuffle_v and_o imply_v in_o say_v we_o can_v show_v tradition_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o tradition_n be_v a_o lively_a voice_n to_o be_v hear_v and_o believe_v of_o such_o as_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v not_o a_o thing_n of_o sight_n to_o be_v show_v in_o book_n do_v not_o you_o say_v nothing_o be_v prove_v true_a by_o be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n of_o lively_a voice_n which_o be_v credible_a for_o itself_o why_o then_o do_v you_o require_v proof_n of_o that_o which_o you_o say_v need_v proof_n need_v cap._n 4._o n._n 53._o l._n 24._o tradition_n be_v such_o a_o principle_n as_o may_v be_v rest_v on_o and_o which_o require_v no_o other_o proof_n no_o proof_n and_o how_o can_v you_o deny_v the_o tradition_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o present_a church_n against_o emergent_a heresy_n see_v it_o be_v consign_v to_o her_o child_n by_o the_o present_a church_n which_o you_o do_v not_o deny_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o consign_v ancient_a tradition_n it_o be_v true_a you_o do_v not_o in_o this_o place_n make_v we_o of_o this_o truth_n a_o absolute_a deed_n of_o gift_n you_o be_v afraid_a it_o go_v something_o against_o your_o heart_n but_o you_o will_v be_v present_o more_o kind-hearted_a for_o in_o the_o next_o cap._n 3._o n._n 45._o you_o speak_v thus_o to_o your_o adversary_n you_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallible_a not_o in_o her_o tradition_n which_o we_o willing_o grant_v if_o they_o be_v as_o universal_a as_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n not_o therefore_o in_o her_o universal_a tradition_n be_v you_o to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallible_a but_o in_o all_o her_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o controversy_n behold_v now_o you_o grant_v willing_o and_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n that_o the_o present_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o universal_a tradition_n but_o not_o in_o all_o her_o definition_n with_o this_o your_o grant_n we_o remain_v content_a for_o the_o present_a and_o for_o the_o grant_n of_o the_o second_o we_o shall_v expect_v your_o leisure_n for_o you_o will_v grant_v it_o in_o the_o end_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n 32._o this_o grant_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o deliver_v tradition_n you_o confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n austin_n cap._n 3._o n._n 43._o for_o to_o his_o testimony_n bring_v by_o charity_n mantayn_v that_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n hold_v and_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o counsel_n but_o have_v always_o be_v keep_v be_v most_o right_o believe_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n you_o answer_v very_o right_a and_o what_o then_o therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o define_v of_o controversy_n thus_o you_o and_o than_o you_o fall_v to_o scoff_n at_o your_o learned_a adversary_n say_v you_o be_v at_o your_o wit_n end_v to_o find_v some_o glue_n or_o solder_v or_o cement_n or_o chain_n or_o thread_n or_o any_o thing_n to_o tie_v together_o the_o autecedent_n and_o the_o consequent_a of_o his_o enthimemes_n and_o so_o wish_v he_o when_o he_o write_v again_o to_o write_v nothing_o but_o syllogism_n i_o believe_v what_o you_o say_v that_o in_o write_v thus_o scornful_o and_o crake_o you_o be_v at_o your_o wit_n end_n that_o be_v at_o that_o end_n of_o your_o wit_n you_o prefix_v unto_o it_o when_o
probable_a and_o but_o moral_o certain_a against_o argument_n which_o seem_v demonstrative_a and_o metaphysical_o certain_a and_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n very_o dangerous_a for_o man_n to_o live_v under_o such_o hard_a or_o impossible_a law_n but_o god_n do_v not_o require_v of_o we_o thing_n unreasonable_a his_o yoke_n be_v sweet_a his_o burden_n light_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v provide_v motive_n which_o propose_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o undoubted_o and_o absolute_o certain_a the_o five_o conviction_n 16._o you_o set_v down_o the_o principle_n whereon_o you_o rely_v in_o teach_v the_o absolute_a fallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n pag._n 27._o second_o edition_n pag_n 314._o lin_v 27._o 329._o lin_v 27._o have_v you_o make_v the_o matter_n of_o faith_n either_o natural_o or_o supernatural_o evident_a it_o may_v have_v be_v a_o fit_o attemper_v and_o due_o proportion_v object_n for_o a_o absolute_a certainty_n natural_a or_o supernatural_a but_o require_v as_o you_o do_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o though_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o yet_o be_v not_o make_v to_o appear_v to_o we_o to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a to_o my_o understanding_n you_o speak_v impossibility_n and_o true_o for_o one_o of_o your_o religion_n to_o do_v so_o be_v but_o a_o good_a decorum_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v so_o full_a of_o contradiction_n a_o contradictious_a faith_n may_v very_o well_o become_v a_o contradictious_a religion_n your_o faith_n then_o let_v it_o be_v a_o free_a necessitate_v certain_a uncertain_a evident_a obscure_a prudent_a and_o foolish_a natural_a and_o supernatural_a unnatural_a assent_n thus_o you_o with_o a_o demosthenian_a thunder_n of_o eloquence_n discharge_v your_o bolt_n upon_o our_o church_n without_o take_v any_o pity_n of_o a_o poor_a company_n of_o only_a blind_a man_n though_o some_o drop_n of_o xantippes_n rain_n come_v mingle_v therewith_o 17._o but_o your_o misery_n be_v a_o poor_a memory_n word_n be_v no_o soon_o out_o of_o your_o pen_n than_o out_o of_o your_o mind_n forin_n other_o place_n you_o approve_v this_o very_a contradictious_a doctrine_n which_o here_o you_o so_o fluent_o declaim_v against_o for_o though_o you_o say_v pag._n 330._o lin_v 14._o that_o god_n can_v infuse_v a_o degree_n of_o certainty_n into_o our_o understanding_n beyond_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o evidence_n he_o give_v we_o of_o the_o object_n yet_o cap._n 6._o num_fw-la 7._o lin_v 9_o 5._o 2._o edit_fw-la pag._n 315._o lin_v 5._o you_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_a well_o may_v we_o assent_v to_o a_o thing_n unknown_a obscure_a and_o unevident_a etc._n etc._n can_v any_o word_n be_v invent_v more_o direct_o repugnant_a to_o what_o you_o say_v before_o that_o assent_n and_o evidence_n must_v correspond_v to_o each_o other_o in_o degree_n a_o probable_a assent_n must_v have_v a_o object_n of_o evident_a probability_n a_o certain_a assent_n a_o object_n of_o evident_a certainty_n now_o you_o say_v absolute_o we_o may_v well_o that_o be_v not_o only_o possible_o but_o also_o easy_o assent_v to_o a_o thing_n unknown_a obscure_a unevident_a how_o do_v this_o agree_v with_o what_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 7._o in_o fine_a it_o be_v impossible_a i_o shall_v believe_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n the_o truth_n whereof_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a to_o i_o with_o evidence_n proportionable_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o faith_n require_v of_o i_o how_o contrary_a be_v this_o to_o what_o you_o say_v cap._n 2._o n._n 154._o lin_v 6._o god_n spirit_n if_o he_o please_v may_v work_v more_o a_o certainty_n of_o adherence_n beyond_o the_o certainty_n of_o evidence_n but_o neither_o god_n do_v nor_o may_v require_v of_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o cap_n 1._o n._n 9_o lin_v 43._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v implore_v by_o devout_a and_o humble_a prayer_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n may_v and_o will_v by_o degree_n advance_v his_o servant_n high_a and_o give_v they_o a_o certainty_n of_o adherence_n beyond_o the_o certainty_n of_o evidence_n thus_o you_o most_o direct_o against_o what_o you_o say_v before_o that_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o a_o thing_n not_o evident_o certain_a be_v impossible_a that_o if_o god_n infuse_v certainty_n into_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n he_o must_v infuse_v also_o evidence_n into_o the_o object_n and_o so_o make_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n as_o visible_a and_o evident_a as_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n be_v certain_a which_o be_v now_o the_o contradictious_a religion_n 18._o and_o where_o you_o say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o require_v of_o man_n more_o than_o they_o can_v do_v by_o themselves_o 13._o 2._o edit_fw-la pag._n 315._o lin_v 13._o and_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v you_o say_v pag._n 350._o lin_v 15._o as_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o bind_v a_o man_n to_o go_v ten_o mile_n a_o hour_n on_o a_o horse_n that_o will_v go_v only_o five_o be_v impious_a as_o disannul_v all_o precept_n of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a action_n for_o why_o may_v not_o god_n require_v of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v able_a of_o himself_o to_o go_v only_o five_o mile_n a_o hour_n that_o he_o go_v ten_o move_v by_o his_o hand_n bind_v he_o not_o to_o resist_v but_o to_o concur_v with_o that_o his_o special_a move_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o natural_a force_n and_o what_o christian_a dare_v deny_v this_o to_o be_v require_v of_o all_o christian_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o come_v unto_o 11.28_o unto_o come_v unto_o i_o all_o mat._n 11.28_o christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o which_o yet_o be_v the_o work_n of_o believe_v of_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v god_n &_o a_o act_n which_o the_o understanding_n do_v not_o exercise_n but_o by_o the_o special_a motion_n and_o he_o and_o except_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o attraction_n of_o divine_a grace_n the_o sixth_o conviction_n 19_o you_o affirm_v in_o the_o prealleadge_v place_n of_o the_o former_a conviction_n that_o our_o catholic_a say_v be_v contradictious_a free_a necessitate_v certain_a uncertain_a evident_a obscure_a prudent_a foolish_a natural_a supernatural_a unnatural_a assent_n a_o declamation_n back_v with_o no_o proof_n childish_a fluent_a rhetoric_n claudite_fw-la iam_fw-la rivos_fw-la pveri_fw-la i_o will_v make_v the_o same_o good_a upon_o yourself_o and_o prove_v you_o do_v attribute_n in_o direct_a term_n these_o contradictious_a condition_n to_o your_o witty_a witless_a faith_n first_o you_o make_v it_o free_a necessitate_v that_o your_o faith_n be_v free_a you_o say_v c._n 6._o n._n 7._o lin_v 16._o 16._o 2._o edit_fw-la cap._n 6._o n._n 7._o lin_v 16._o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o faith_n that_o the_o object_n of_o it_o the_o point_n which_o we_o believe_v be_v not_o so_o evident_o certain_a as_o to_o necessitate_v our_o understanding_n to_o assent_v that_o it_o be_v necessitate_v &_o enforce_v by_o evident_a reason_n you_o suppose_v cap._n 1._o n._n 9_o lin_v 15._o god_n require_v of_o all_o 2d_o 2._o edit_fw-la cap._n 1._o n._n 9_o lin_v 2d_o that_o their_o faith_n shall_v be_v proportionable_a to_o the_o motive_n enforce_v to_o it_o behold_v reason_n enforce_v that_o be_v necessitate_v you_o to_o assent_v and_o so_o make_v it_o a_o free_a necessitate_a assent_n second_o evident_a obscure_a evident_a because_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 7._o in_o fine_a that_o i_o shall_v believe_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n the_o truth_n whereof_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a to_o i_o be_v impossible_a obscure_a because_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 7._o lin_v 10._o well_o may_v we_o assent_v to_o a_o thing_n unknown_a obscure_a unevident_a three_o certain_a uncertain_a most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a cap._n 3._o n._n 86._o lin_v 12._o use_v the_o mean_n 12._o 2._o edit_fw-la cap._n 3._o n._n ●6_n lin_v 12._o and_o pray_v for_o god_n assistance_n and_o as_o sure_a as_o god_n be_v true_a you_o shall_v be_v lead_v into_o all_o necessary_a truth_n here_o you_o profess_v that_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o true_a necessary_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o you_o be_v hereof_o as_o sure_o as_o you_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n be_v true_a now_o i_o hope_v you_o be_v and_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o profess_v to_o be_v d_o most_o undoubted_o sure_a that_o god_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la ●_o 2._o edit_fw-la cap._n 2._o n._n ●_o you_o be_v most_o undoubted_o sure_a that_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o true_a necessary_a way_n to_o heaven_n for_o how_o can_v you_o assure_v other_o of_o that_o whereof_o you_o be_v not_o sure_a yourself_o and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o contrary_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o your_o impious_a error_n you_o here_o profess_v certainty_n of_o adherence_n beyond_o certainty_n of_o evidence_n you_o say_v you_o be_v as_o certain_a as_o god_n be_v true_a of_o christian_a save_v truth_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n
be_v as_o evident_a to_o your_o understanding_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n be_v true_a your_o faith_n then_o in_o this_o place_n be_v most_o infallible_a but_o in_o other_o place_n it_o stand_v upon_o weak_a leg_n upon_o tradition_n which_o be_v fallible_a upon_o motive_n upon_o cap._n 2._o n_o 154_o high_o credible_a but_o not_o infallible_a motive_n only_a probable_a motive_n four_o prudent_a foolish_a foolish_a because_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o n._n 10._o many_o of_o you_o believe_v a_o right_n which_o be_v not_o wise_a and_o cap._n 6._o n._n 74._o in_o fine_a the_o imprudent_a faith_n of_o protestant_n may_v proceed_v from_o divine_a motion_n be_v not_o this_o to_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v prudent_a foolish_a prudent_a because_o they_o that_o follow_v it_o go_v to_o heaven_n and_o follow_v therein_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n foolish_a because_o you_o say_v they_o be_v not_o wise_a their_o believe_v be_v just_o fine_a just_o cap._n 6._o n._n 9_o in_o fine_a condemn_v of_o levity_n and_o rashness_n 35._o rashness_n cap._n 2._o n._n 49._o lin_v 35._o a_o foolish_a and_o imprudent_a action_n five_o your_o assent_n be_v natural_a unnatural_a natural_a because_o 12._o because_o preface_n n_o 12._o resolve_v by_o logic_n final_o determine_v fine_a determine_v cap._n 2_o n._n 3_o in_o fine_a by_o natural_a reason_n unnatural_a because_o it_o can_v against_o nature_n against_o the_o prime_a rule_n of_o natural_a reason_n &_o discourse_n stand_v with_o the_o contradictory_n assent_v at_o the_o same_o time_n 6._o time_n pag._n 215._o lin_v 4._o &_o 2._o edition_n pag._n 206._o lin_v 6._o your_o faith_n i_o say_v of_o this_o truth_n christ_n be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n with_o your_o belief_n of_o this_o socinian_n heresy_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o your_o faith_n then_o natural_a unnatural_a noble_a base_a catholic_a heretical_a reasonable_a unreasonable_a all_o at_o once_o final_o undernaturall_a supernatural_a which_o be_v prove_v by_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 6._o n._n 62._o reason_n will_v convince_v any_o man_n unless_o he_o be_v of_o a_o perverse_a mind_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v great_a than_o this_o god_n say_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a from_o these_o word_n i_o gather_v first_o that_o your_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v undernatural_a and_o inferior_a in_o certainty_n to_o natural_a reason_n for_o you_o say_v by_o natural_a reason_n the_o same_o be_v convince_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o same_o cap._n 6._o n._n 60._o you_o say_v we_o must_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o proof_n then_o of_o the_o thing_n prove_v by_o it_o ergo_fw-la your_o faith_n certainty_n of_o scripture_n be_v under_o natural_a reason_n and_o not_o so_o sure_a and_o infallible_a as_o your_o reason_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v also_o supernatural_a certainty_n because_o you_o say_v no_o reason_n can_v be_v great_a than_o this_o god_n say_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a and_o preface_n n._n 2._o pag._n 2._o lin_v 14._o i_o submit_v all_o other_o reason_n to_o this_o one_o god_n say_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a now_o that_o one_o reasou_fw-mi to_o which_o all_o other_o natural_a reason_n yield_v and_o submit_v themselves_o must_v needs_o be_v supernatural_a and_o superior_a in_o certaynty_a to_o all_o natural_a reason_n so_o that_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o your_o own_o plain_n &_o express_v word_n that_o your_o religion_n of_o wit_n be_v contradictious_a free_a enforce_v evident_a obscure_a certain_a uncertain_a prudent_a foolish_a natural_a unnatural_a undernatural_a supernatural_a whereby_o one_o may_v see_v your_o assertion_n that_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o certain_a and_o infallible_a but_o only_o high_o credible_a what_o a_o main_n and_o mighty_a contradiction_n the_o same_o be_v and_o what_o a_o world_n of_o gross_a absurditye_n and_o repugnance_n be_v involue_v therein_o the_o seven_o conviction_n 20._o cap._n 2._o n._n 154._o lin_v 8._o you_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o certain_a and_o infallible_a and_o why_o god_n can_v require_v it_o of_o christian_n because_o say_v you_o no_o man_n can_v give_v and_o so_o can_v be_v require_v to_o give_v a_o great_a assent_n to_o the_o conclusion_n than_o the_o premise_n deserve_v and_o cap._n 6._o nu_fw-la 7._o ante_fw-la finem_fw-la nothing_o be_v more_o repugnant_a than_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v require_v to_o give_v most_o certain_a credit_n unto_o that_o which_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v most_o certain_a credible_a but_o c._n 5._o n._n 8._o to_o the_o contrary_a you_o write_v of_o this_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n we_o be_v &_o may_v be_v make_v infallible_o certain_a and_o c._n 6._o n._n 9_o argument_n so_o credible_a that_o though_o they_o can_v make_v we_o see_v what_o we_o believe_v yet_o they_o evident_o connince_n that_o in_o true_a wisdom_n and_o prudence_n the_o article_n of_o it_o deserve_v credit_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v accept_v as_o thing_n reveal_v of_o god_n thus_o you_o and_o be_v you_o so_o dull_a as_o not_o to_o see_v how_o from_o these_o your_o two_o saying_n join_v together_o in_o discourse_n vild_a blasphemy_n may_v be_v conclude_v the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n can_v you_o say_v by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n be_v make_v certain_a or_o fit_a to_o be_v credit_v with_o infallible_a faith_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n can_v be_v make_v credible_a and_o fit_a to_o becredited_a as_o thing_n reveal_v of_o god_n ergo_fw-la thing_n credible_a as_o reveal_v of_o god_n be_v not_o credible_a with_o infallible_a faith_n and_o consequent_o to_o thing_n reveal_v of_o god_n a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a assent_n be_v not_o due_a be_v not_o this_o to_o deny_v the_o infinite_a verity_n and_o veracity_n of_o god_n and_o his_o word_n hence_o ground_v upon_o the_o contradictory_n i_o dispute_v in_o this_o manner_n what_o we_o may_v &_o must_v believe_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v and_o must_v believe_v with_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a assent_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a and_o so_o nothing_o can_v more_o deserve_v to_o be_v undoubted_o credit_v then_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o be_v as_o you_o say_v infallible_o certain_a and_o argument_n evident_o convince_v that_o we_o may_v and_o must_v believe_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o as_o thing_n reveal_v of_o god_n ergo_fw-la we_o may_v and_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o christian_a duty_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n with_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a assent_n the_o eight_o conviction_n 21._o in_o your_o preface_n n._n 2._o you_o say_v i_o be_o most_o apt_a and_o most_o willing_a to_o be_v lead_v by_o reason_n always_o submit_v all_o other_o reason_n to_o this_o one_o god_n say_v it_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o this_o say_n do_v imply_v of_o necessity_n that_o the_o adherence_n of_o faith_n unto_o god_n word_n be_v more_o certain_a then_o that_o of_o sense_n or_o any_o knowledge_n ground_v on_o reason_n because_o if_o all_o other_o reason_n must_v yield_v &_o submit_v to_o this_o one_o reason_n god_n say_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o than_o this_o reason_n i_o see_v this_o with_o my_o eye_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o must_v yield_v to_o this_o god_n say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o if_o the_o assent_n due_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o more_o certain_a and_o infallible_a then_o that_o of_o sense_n the_o conclusion_n from_o the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n be_v not_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o conclusion_n from_o the_o certainty_n of_o god_n word_n ergo_fw-la by_o your_o own_o profession_n you_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v false_a in_o say_v the_o adherence_n by_o faith_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o more_o certain_a than_o that_o of_o sense_n or_o else_o you_o cog_v and_o dissemble_v to_o hide_v your_o infidelity_n when_o you_o say_v i_o submit_v all_o other_o reason_n to_o this_o one_o god_n say_v so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o 22._o hence_o i_o further_o infer_v that_o christian_n ought_v &_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o mystery_n revease_v in_o scripture_n though_o they_o seem_v implicatory_a and_o impossible_a to_o your_o human_a reason_n which_o you_o deny_v pag._n 215._o 18._o 2._o edit_fw-la pag._n 206._o lin_v 18._o lin_v 16._o for_o if_o all_o other_o reason_n must_v yield_v to_o this_o one_o god_n say_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o then_o also_o this_o reason_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n seem_v manifest_o
mark_n whereat_o it_o aim_v the_o work_n it_o labour_v with_o all_o might_n and_o main_n to_o bring_v to_o pass_v be_v the_o total_a overthrow_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n i_o have_v show_v that_o you_o resolve_v christian_a religion_n into_o natural_a reason_n whereby_o you_o destroy_v the_o divinity_n thereof_o in_o the_o second_o that_o you_o make_v the_o same_o to_o stand_v upon_o principle_n and_o motive_n credible_a but_o fallible_a whereby_o you_o undermine_v the_o absolute_a certainty_n thereof_o in_o this_o three_o chapter_n i_o be_o to_o show_v you_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n thereof_o and_o make_v the_o same_o stain_a with_o ignorance_n and_o error_n not_o only_o in_o the_o whole_a current_n of_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o in_o the_o fountain_n thereof_o the_o holy_a gospel_n and_o in_o our_o saviour_n and_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n the_o author_n the_o first_o conviction_n 1._o you_o thrust_v a_o mortal_a stab_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_a religion_n through_o s._n augustine_n his_o side_n while_o you_o charge_v his_o speech_n with_o palpable_a falsehood_n which_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n s._n austin_n say_v you_o ca_fw-mi 6._o n._n 14._o in_o fine_a as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n in_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v extend_v further_a than_o africa_n so_o be_v he_o in_o the_o wrong_n if_o he_o think_v that_o of_o necessity_n it_o always_o must_v be_v so_o but_o most_o palpable_o mistake_v in_o conceave_a that_o it_o be_v then_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n which_o if_o passion_n do_v not_o trouble_v you_o and_o make_v you_o forget_v how_o late_o almost_o half_a of_o the_o world_n be_v discover_v and_o in_o what_o state_n it_o be_v then_o find_v you_o will_v very_o easy_o see_v and_o confess_v thus_o you_o unto_o who_o i_o say_v what_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n say_v to_o maximinus_n a_o arian_n that_o be_v almost_o the_o same_o though_o not_o altogether_o so_o bad_a as_o a_o sociniam_fw-la 2._o aduersu●_n maximinum_n lib._n 2._o c._n 2._o o_fw-la quam_fw-la de_fw-fr proximo_fw-la te_fw-la corrigeres_fw-la si_fw-la timeres_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la time_n dicere_fw-la o_o how_o soon_o will_v you_o reclaim_v yourself_o do_v you_o fear_v to_o believe_v in_o heart_n what_o you_o fear_v to_o say_v in_o word_n for_o although_o you_o dare_v not_o open_o profess_v with_o the_o samosatenian_o yet_o you_o dare_v believe_v that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o people_n as_o american_n in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o out_o of_o ignorance_n utter_v a_o palpable_a falsehood_n when_o he_o say_v 24.47_o luc._n 24.47_o that_o his_o apostle_n shall_v preach_v penance_n in_o his_o name_n unto_o all_o nation_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o he_o not_o only_o in_o jerusalem_n jewry_n &_o samaria_n but_o also_o unto_o thou_o ut_fw-la most_o of_o the_o world_n hereby_o he_o induce_v the_o evangelist_n to_o mistake_v ult._n mar._n ult._n and_o false_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n go_v preach_v every_o where_o our_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v the_o word_n by_o sign_n that_o follow_v and_o s._n paul_n 18._o rom._n 〈◊〉_d 18._o that_o the_o apostolical_a preach_v be_v spread_v into_o all_o land_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n if_o i_o say_v s._n augustin_n saying_n that_o the_o church_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o nation_n in_o his_o day_n be_v a_o palpable_a falsehood_n because_o it_o be_v not_o then_o in_o america_n then_o the_o prophecy_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o his_o apostle_n shall_v spread_v his_o name_n and_o plant_n christianity_n in_o all_o nation_n as_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o this_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v also_o manifest_a mistake_n and_o if_o the_o gospel_n be_v mistake_v in_o one_o point_n through_o ignorance_n in_o the_o author_n thereof_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o 2._o for_o if_o one_o confess_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v true_a god_n and_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v american_n at_o that_o time_n he_o must_v say_v that_o either_o our_o lord_n willling_o speak_v a_o untruth_n in_o say_v the_o apostle_n shall_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n &_o so_o by_o admit_v on_o lie_n to_o be_v in_o one_o say_v of_o the_o gospel_n he_o destroy_v the_o certainty_n of_o all_o or_o he_o must_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o american_n and_o make_v they_o christian_n and_o if_o they_o be_v christian_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n how_o can_v you_o tell_v they_o be_v not_o also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n austin_n or_o final_o he_o must_v confess_v the_o truth_n that_o this_o speech_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o church_n be_v every_o where_n and_o in_o all_o nation_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a truth_n even_o when_o the_o american_n be_v not_o christian_n nor_o have_v hear_v of_o christ_n but_o this_o you_o deny_v and_o call_v it_o a_o palpable_a falsehood_n so_o clear_a as_o every_o man_n not_o blind_v with_o passion_n do_v now_o perceive_v the_o falsehood_n thereof_o ergo_fw-la you_o deny_v the_o gospel_n which_o you_o grant_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o you_o be_v a_o formal_a heretic_n c._n 2._o n._n 122._o you_o do_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o impious_a but_o also_o impossible_a that_o any_o christian_n shall_v do_v as_o you_o say_v cap_n 4._o n._n 4._o lin_v 19_o a_o supposition_n impossible_a cap._n 3._o n._n 35._o lin_v 21._o you_o do_v a_o thing_n you_o profess_v against_o say_v you_o will_v not_o be_v move_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o even_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n so_o that_o your_o last_o refuge_n must_v be_v ro_o confess_v that_o to_o call_v s._n augustine_n speech_n which_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n a_o palpable_a falsehood_n you_o be_v persuade_v not_o by_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n which_o make_v you_o hate_v subjection_n to_o the_o one_o universal_a visible_a church_n the_o second_o conviction_n 3._o you_o do_v not_o undermine_v but_o open_o dig_v up_o the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n by_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n through_o ignorance_n oversight_n or_o partiality_n err_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v err_v i_o say_v and_o the_o whole_a church_n with_o they_o even_o after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o thus_o you_o write_v c._n 3._o n._n 31._o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o even_o after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v &_o through_o inaduertence_n or_o prejudice_n continue_v for_o a_o time_n in_o a_o error_n it_o be_v as_o i_o have_v already_o note_v unansverable_o evident_a from_o the_o story_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o you_o &_o you_o avouch_v the_o same_o cap._n 3._o n_o 21._o but_o in_o direct_a contradiction_n of_o this_o you_o say_v cap._n 3._o n._n 74._o lin_v 14._o about_o the_o perpetual_a infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o he_o will_v send_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o shall_v teach_v they_o all_o truth_n and_o stay_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o it_o signifyes_n say_v you_o not_o eternal_o without_o end_n of_o time_n but_o perpetvally_o without_o interruption_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o life_n so_o that_o the_o force_n and_o fence_v of_o the_o word_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v never_o want_v the_o spirit_n assistance_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o function_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n do_v after_o his_o come_n perpetual_o without_o interruption_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o life_n stay_v with_o they_o always_o assist_v they_o &_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n how_o can_v it_o be_v true_a that_o even_o after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o be_v lead_v into_o error_n and_o continue_v therein_o for_o as_o time_n through_o inaduertence_n or_o prejudice_n a_o error_n so_o plain_a and_o manifest_a against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o which_o they_o can_v not_o fall_v into_o without_o they_o be_v stupid_a see_v the_o very_a gift_n of_o speak_v the_o tongue_n of_o all_o nation_n which_o they_o receive_v together_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n still_o continue_v with_o they_o be_v they_o so_o dull_a and_o heavy-hearted_n even_o after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o not_o to_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n they_o be_v declare_v and_o make_v preacher_n of_o christ_n unto_o all_o nation_n under_o the_o cope_n of_o heaven_n
violence_n how_o different_a be_v you_o from_o yourself_o in_o diverse_a place_n to_o bring_v in_o your_o new_a religion_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o only_o the_o bible_n you_o accuse_v the_o ancient_a father_n that_o they_o be_v with_o full_a consent_n opposite_a one_o to_o another_o age_n against_o age_n but_o in_o your_o so_o wise_o choose_v religion_n there_o be_v such_o a_o perpetual_a fight_n that_o there_o be_v more_o difference_n betwixt_o two_o of_o your_o page_n then_o betwixt_o all_o christian_a age_n 14._o i_o must_v note_v in_o this_o place_n to_o answer_v a_o silly_a calumniation_n against_o our_o church_n the_o only_a argument_n in_o your_o book_n that_o may_v trouble_v a_o ignorant_a reader_n because_o it_o require_v some_o little_a historical_a erudition_n to_o confute_v it_o that_o though_o you_o feign_v the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n augustine_n full_a of_o great_a variety_n of_o superstition_n yet_o you_o say_v that_o the_o donatist_n do_v false_o calumniate_v catholic_n that_o they_o do_v set_v image_n upon_o their_o altar_n and_o 101._o and_o cap._n 6._o n._n 101._o s._n austin_n do_v not_o justify_v the_o church_n say_v as_o we_o will_v have_v do_v in_o that_o case_n those_o picture_n be_v worship_v not_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o they_o who_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o but_o do_v abhor_v the_o thing_n and_o deny_v the_o imputation_n behold_v here_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n or_o of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o for_o cap._n 6._o n._n 16._o you_o acknowledge_v that_o s._n augustine_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o picture_n but_o by_o a_o rhetorical_a figure_n call_v it_o i_o know_v not_o what_o but_o say_v you_o compare_v he_o with_o optatus_n and_o you_o shall_v plain_o perceive_v that_o this_o i_o know_v not_o what_o pretend_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v indeed_o a_o picture_n behold_v in_o this_o your_o second_o tell_v the_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n or_o of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o be_v fall_v from_o picture_n to_o a_o picture_n grant_v that_o the_o donatist_n do_v not_o accuse_v catholic_n for_o set_v up_o all_o kind_n of_o picture_n in_o the_o church_n or_o upon_o the_o altar_n but_o for_o a_o picture_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o note_v and_o show_v the_o ridiculous_a vanity_n of_o the_o inference_n you_o tacit_o make_v it_o be_v a_o picture_n ergo_fw-la the_o picture_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o some_o saint_n but_o tell_v the_o reader_n what_o that_o picture_n be_v and_o of_o who_o to_o wit_n of_o constans_n the_o emperor_n son_n to_o constantine_n the_o great_a this_o most_o pious_a christian_a emperor_n as_o optatus_n relate_v send_v two_o chief_a noble_a man_n of_o his_o court_n paulus_n and_o macarius_n eminent_a for_o christian_a piety_n and_o wisdom_n in_o ambassadge_n into_o africa_n with_o paupertas_fw-la with_o cu_z elee_o mosynis_fw-la quibus_fw-la sublevata_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la singulas_fw-la possit_fw-la respirare_fw-la vestiti_fw-la pasci_fw-la gaudere_fw-la paupertas_fw-la great_a liberality_n to_o bestow_v on_o poor_a christian_n donatist_n especial_o hope_v by_o this_o courtesy_n to_o win_v their_o heart_n unto_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n fear_v the_o success_n of_o this_o imperial_a liberality_n do_v mighty_o malign_v the_o two_o nobleman_n especial_o macarius_n who_o they_o sometime_o assault_v in_o his_o journey_n put_v he_o in_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n seek_v to_o take_v from_o he_o by_o force_n that_o imperial_a treasure_n &_o because_o in_o one_o assault_n they_o make_v some_o two_o donatist_n be_v slay_v they_o present_o proclaim_v they_o martyr_n 39_o martyr_n aug._n contr_n litter_n as_o pitil_o l._n 2._o c._n 39_o macarius_n a_o persecutor_n a_o pagan_a and_o call_v catholic_n macarian_n of_o he_o among_o other_o tale_n and_o slander_n they_o give_v out_o that_o 15._o that_o falsa_fw-la opinio_fw-la omnium_fw-la populorum_fw-la aures_fw-la oppleverat_fw-la dice_n batur_fw-la enim_fw-la venturos_fw-la paulum_fw-la &_o macarium_fw-la qui_fw-la interessent_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la altaria_fw-la solemniter_fw-la aptarentur_fw-la preferrent_fw-la illi_fw-la imaginem_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offerretur_fw-la optat._n lib._n 3._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la 2._o edition_n pag._n 331._o lin_v 9_o 2._o edition_n pag._n 322._o lin_v 15._o paulus_n and_o macarius_n when_o they_o be_v present_a at_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n use_v to_o set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o the_o emperor_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o that_o before_o it_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v and_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o people_n make_v whereof_o the_o reader_n may_v be_v more_o full_o inform_v in_o baronius_n anno_fw-la 348._o behold_v the_o best_a argument_n &_o erudition_n of_o your_o book_n what_o a_o poor_a snake_n it_o be_v be_v bring_v to_o light_n out_o of_o the_o lurk_a hole_n of_o your_o dark_a and_o dimidiate_n narration_n of_o the_o fact_n the_o five_o conviction_n 15._o you_o often_o affirm_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v utterlyperish_v nor_o loose_v its_o essence_n and_o be_v cap._n 3._o n._n 78._o you_o know_v we_o grant_v &_o must_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n still_o hold_v all_o necessary_a truth_n for_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o do_v so_o but_o pag._n 347._o l._n 21._o you_o faith_n the_o contrary_a the_o roman_a church_n in_o particular_a be_v forewarn_v that_o she_o also_o nay_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n may_v fall_v if_o they_o look_v not_o to_o there_o stand_v pag._n 338._o lin_v 11._o speak_v against_o the_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n me_n think_v you_o say_v s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n can_v not_o but_o have_v congratulate_v this_o their_o privilege_n to_o they_o bid_v he_o acknowledge_v that_o their_o say_v be_v the_o rule_n for_o all_o the_o world_n for_o ever_o but_o then_o sure_o he_o will_v have_v forbear_v to_o put_v they_o in_o fear_n that_o they_o nay_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n if_o they_o do_v not_o look_v to_o their_o stand_n may_v fall_v away_o to_o infidelity_n as_o the_o jew_n have_v do_v cop._n 3._o n._n 30._o in_o fine_a it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o she_o church_n to_o deviate_v from_o this_o rule_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o man_n of_o which_o every_o one_o have_v free_a will_n &_o be_v subject_a to_o passion_n and_o error_n this_o your_o reason_n convince_v if_o your_o supposition_n be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o mere_a man_n leave_v to_o their_o ntture_v have_v freewill_n subject_a to_o passion_n and_o error_n but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v ever_o and_o shall_v still_o believe_v that_o no_o true_a christian_n will_v be_v so_o profane_a as_o to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v freewill_n without_o divine_a grace_n nothing_o but_o nature_n subject_a to_o passion_n and_o error_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n the_o church_n be_v the_o mystical_a body_n animate_v with_o his_o spirit_n which_o she_o shall_v never_o abandon_v 16._o nor_o do_v s._n paul_n fright_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n much_o less_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n with_o possibility_n of_o fall_v away_o into_o infidelity_n but_o say_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n 11._o number_n rom._n 11._o thou_o stand_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o high_a mind_v but_o fear_v to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o every_o single_a christian_a that_o he_o may_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o faith_n on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o say_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n 1.4_o number_n rom._n 1.4_o your_o faith_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o word_n the_o father_n mutari_fw-la father_n hieron_n apolog_fw-la advers_o ruf._n scito_fw-la romanam_fw-la fidem_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la praestigias_fw-la non_fw-la recipere_fw-la &_o pauliauthoritate_fw-la munitam_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la mutari_fw-la understand_v to_o signify_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n shall_v ever_o be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o more_o clear_o afterward_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o epistle_n 16.17_o epistle_n rom._n 16.17_o note_v such_o as_o make_v dissension_n against_o the_o doctrine_n you_o have_v receive_v signify_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o office_n to_o note_v &_o censure_v all_o heretic_n that_o shall_v raise_v discord_n in_o the_o church_n against_o the_o roman_a tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o incontinent_o he_o show_v the_o privilege_n of_o divine_a effication_n assistance_n not_o to_o err_v in_o this_o office_n say_v and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n shall_v crush_v satan_n under_o your_o foot_n with_o speed_n what_o be_v this_o but_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n have_v make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n as_o 45._o
as_o radicem_fw-la &_o matricem_fw-la eeclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la cyp_n ep._n 45._o the_o father_n term_v it_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n to_o crush_v satan_n that_o be_v say_v origen_n every_o contradictious_a spirit_n that_o teach_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n under_o their_o foot_n which_o speech_n have_v no_o small_a allusion_n to_o the_o reverence_n use_v by_o catholic_a christian_n to_o the_o foot_n of_o s._n peter_n successor_n if_o you_o have_v any_o text_n in_o scripture_n but_o half_a as_o clear_v against_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o bishop_n as_o this_o be_v for_o it_o your_o triumph_a vociferation_n that_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a as_o the_o sun_n will_v hardly_o be_v contain_v under_o the_o cope_n of_o heaven_n this_o appear_v by_o your_o urge_v the_o place_n be_v not_o high_o mind_v but_o fear_v as_o threaten_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n with_o possibility_n of_o fall_v from_o christ_n which_o see_v you_o can_v not_o do_v without_o involue_v in_o the_o same_o damnation_n and_o defectibility_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n you_o profess_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n may_v fall_v away_o into_o infidelity_n against_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n 9_o christ_n infra_fw-la c._n 7._o conu_fw-la 9_o yea_o against_o what_o yourself_o affirm_v a_o hundred_o time_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o only_a mean_n or_o rule_v to_o know_v all_o necessary_a truth_n or_o that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n be_v not_o evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n chap._n four_o 1._o in_o this_o chapter_n i_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o your_o unfruitful_a tree_n cover_v with_o green_a leaf_n of_o assertion_n without_o any_o branch_n or_o bow_v of_o strong_a proof_n i_o dig_v up_o the_o ruinous_a foundation_n of_o your_o babilonicall_a build_n of_o confuse_a language_n full_a of_o doctrine_n different_a yea_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v that_o you_o mistake_v the_o protestant_a sense_n of_o this_o their_o principle_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n o●_n all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n that_o you_o understand_v not_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o about_o tradition_n unwritten_a that_o you_o run_v headlong_o on_o with_o this_o principle_n in_o your_o mouth_n without_o any_o bit_n of_o true_a sense_n or_o christian_a belief_n stumble_v against_o all_o the_o article_n of_o christianity_n whereby_o you_o get_v many_o new_a noble_a victory_n over_o yourself_o by_o fall_v down_o in_o flat_a contradiction_n upon_o yourself_o 2._o to_o understand_v this_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v contain_v most_o clear_o to_o the_o seem_n in_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n take_v single_o by_o itself_o which_o yet_o if_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v confer_v and_o all_o thing_n consider_v be_v but_o dark_o and_o doubtful_o deliver_v therein_o for_o example_n by_o the_o say_n of_o s._n luke_n that_o joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v the_o son_n of_o hely_n it_o seem_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o hely_n be_v his_o true_a and_o natural_a father_n neither_o will_v any_o christian_a have_v doubt_v thereof_o have_v not_o s._n matthew_n write_v that_o jacob_n beget_v joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o mary_n so_o that_o the_o two_o text_n which_o take_v by_o themselselue_n seem_v most_o clear_a be_v confer_v together_o do_v mutual_o darken_v &_o obscure_v each_o other_o this_o truth_n suppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n about_o the_o question_n whether_o all_o point_n of_o necessary_a faith_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n consist_v in_o two_o assertion_n in_o the_o one_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o other_o they_o disagree_v from_o us._n 3._o first_o they_o teach_v that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o contain_v clear_o in_o scripture_n understand_v by_o conference_n of_o place_n but_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o ambiguytye_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n be_v necessary_a which_o rule_n comprehend_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v always_o notorious_o know_v and_o explicit_o believe_v of_o all_o christian_n thus_o far_o they_o and_o we_o consent_v there_o be_v 14._o be_v d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 4._o c._n 16._o item_n c._n 14._o say_v d._n field_n betwixt_o our_o adversary_n and_o we_o no_o difference_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o we_o confess_v that_o neither_o conference_n of_o place_n nor_o consideration_n of_o antecedentia_fw-la and_o consequentia_fw-la nor_o look_v into_o the_o original_n be_v of_o any_o force_n unless_o we_o find_v the_o thing_n we_o conceive_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o mean_v in_o the_o place_n interpret_v to_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v there_o any_o of_o our_o divines_n that_o teach_v otherwise_o thus_o he_o 4._o second_o protestant_n teach_v that_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o some_o text_n or_o text_n of_o scripture_n clear_a and_o conspicuous_a take_v by_o themselves_o so_o that_o though_o we_o need_v the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n that_o we_o may_v assure_o understand_v the_o scripture_n confer_v together_o yet_o not_o to_o deliver_v unto_o we_o some_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n believe_v faith_n d._n field_n lib._n 4._o c._n 14._o we_o do_v not_o so_o make_v scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o we_o neglect_v the_o other_o of_o tradition_n nor_o so_o admit_v the_o other_o as_o to_o detractany_a thing_n from_o the_o plenitude_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v contain_v that_o must_v be_v believe_v which_o be_v no_o way_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n herein_o there_o be_v some_o disagreement_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o because_o we_o hold_v that_o some_o verity_n of_o necessary_a belief_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n sufficient_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o that_o sole_a proof_n without_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n now_o you_o agree_v neither_o with_o protestant_n nor_o with_o we_o you_o maintain_v that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n be_v evident_o certain_a in_o scripture_n expound_v by_o conference_n of_o place_n without_o any_o rule_n of_o traditive_a interpretation_n yea_o you_o contend_v that_o no_o such_o rule_n be_v extant_a this_o you_o do_v not_o as_o protestant_n do_v to_o establish_v the_o total_a sufficiency_n &_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o receive_v article_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o to_o overthrow_v total_o all_o explicit_a belief_n of_o any_o christian_a mystery_n whatsoever_o as_o by_o the_o ensue_a conviction_n of_o your_o error_n from_o your_o own_o say_n will_v manifest_o appear_v for_o while_o you_o endeavour_v to_o spread_v this_o infidelity_n covert_o under_o the_o mask_n of_o a_o protestant_n or_o of_o a_o christian_a for_o want_v of_o consideration_n memory_n and_o wit_n you_o every_o where_fw-mi contradict_v yourself_o affirm_v and_o deny_v say_v and_o unsay_v build_v and_o unbuild_v the_o first_o conviction_n 5._o thus_o you_o write_v cap._n 2._o n._n 159._o lin_v 9_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o be_v of_o christian_a doctrine_n as_o requisite_a to_o the_o well_o be_v thereof_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n much_o more_o without_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n and_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o cap._n 2._o n._n 33._o lin_v 7._o if_o man_n aid_v believe_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o scripture_n it_o will_v no_o way_n hinder_v their_o salvation_n not_o to_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o scripture_n or_o no._n those_o barbarous_a nation_n s._n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o be_v in_o this_o case_n yet_o no_o doubt_n they_o may_v be_v save_v yea_o say_v 20._o say_v cap._n 2._o n._n 159._o lin_v 20._o you_o though_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n propose_v unto_o they_o by_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n which_o receive_v they_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n require_v of_o we_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n only_o to_o believe_v the_o veritye_n therein_o contain_v and_o not_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o book_n wherein_o they_o be_v contain_v thus_o you_o destroy_v your_o principle_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o the_o only_a safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n as_o i_o prove_v by_o three_o argument_n from_o these_o word_n which_o indeed_o be_v evident_a truth_n the_o first_o argument_n christian_a faith_n can_v be_v rule_v and_o guide_v to_o salvation_n and_o attain_v to_o heaven_n without_o the_o only_a rule_n without_o the_o only_a guide_n without_o the_o only_a mean_n no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v deny_v this_o now_o
4._o for_o as_o you_o say_v pag._n 337._o n._n o._n lin_v 23._o a_o doubtful_a and_o questionable_a guide_n be_v as_o good_a as_o none_o at_o all_o be_v it_o then_o impious_a to_o think_v that_o man_n be_v in_o necessity_n of_o a_o guide_n to_o heaven_n and_o for_o want_n of_o one_o in_o term_n of_o perish_v eternal_o god_n have_v commend_v and_o command_v unto_o they_o for_o their_o guide_n a_o doubtful_a &_o questionable_a church_n which_o man_n neither_o know_v where_o to_o find_v nor_o be_v find_v how_o to_o trust_v 14._o what_o you_o say_v of_o a_o penitent_a sinner_n that_o god_n will_v not_o damn_v he_o for_o the_o secret_a defect_n in_o his_o desire_a absolution_n because_o his_o ghostly_a father_n be_v perhaps_o a_o atheist_n and_o can_v not_o or_o a_o villain_n and_o will_v not_o give_v he_o absolution_n first_o you_o be_v deceive_v in_o think_v that_o a_o secret_a atheist_n can_v give_v absolution_n for_o he_o may_v if_o he_o have_v intention_n to_o do_v what_o christ_n institute_v and_o this_o intention_n he_o may_v have_v though_o he_o esteem_v of_o that_o institution_n no_o better_o then_o of_o a_o foppery_n as_o for_o a_o villain_n it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o any_o christian_a priest_n will_v be_v such_o a_o villain_n as_o not_o to_o give_v his_o penitent_a absolution_n in_o which_o case_n if_o perhaps_o it_o fall_v out_o we_o think_v god_n of_o his_o goodness_n will_v not_o permit_v such_o a_o penitent_a to_o perish_v yet_o the_o case_n be_v rare_a &_o extraordinary_a he_o have_v appoint_v no_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o succour_n but_o he_o will_v supply_v such_o defect_n as_o he_o many_o way_n may_v easy_o do_v by_o his_o special_a providence_n now_o the_o necessity_n of_o christian_n for_o the_o defect_n in_o their_o assurance_n of_o the_o true_a text_n of_o scripture_n and_o uncorrupt_a translation_n be_v continual_a ordinary_a and_o it_o imply_v incertainty_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o christian_n for_o there_o be_v scare_v any_o that_o can_v assure_v themselves_o of_o the_o true_a text_n or_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o translation_n they_o use_v by_o search_v into_o the_o original_n and_o ancient_a copy_n wherefore_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o they_o a_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o assurance_n continual_o at_o hand_n and_o for_o the_o capacity_n of_o all_o to_o wit_v a_o church_n infallible_a and_o so_o conspicuous_a as_o she_o may_v be_v see_v of_o all_o the_o four_o conviction_n 15._o another_o principle_n you_o deliver_v c._n 3._o n._n 33._o li._n 10._o wherein_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o &_o deprive_v scripture_n of_o be_v the_o only_a or_o the_o prime_a christian_a rule_n of_o faith_n i_o must_v learn_v of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o i_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a for_o how_o can_v i_o come_v to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o christ_n that_o he_o teach_v such_o doctrine_n that_o he_o &_o his_o disciple_n do_v such_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o it_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o i_o be_v teach_v it_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v though_o not_o a_o certain_a foundation_n and_o proof_n of_o my_o faith_n yet_o a_o necessary_a introduction_n to_o it_o thus_o you_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n you_o make_v the_o creed_n contain_v all_o fundamental_a article_n of_o simple_a belief_n independent_a of_o scripture_n cap._n 4._o n._n 15._o the_o certainty_n i_o have_v of_o the_o creed_n that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o contain_v the_o principle_n of_o faith_n i_o ground_n it_o not_o upon_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o contrary_a to_o this_o in_o formal_a term_n your_o affirm_v cap._n 3._o n._n 37._o lin_v 9_o say_v of_o protestant_n they_o ground_n their_o belief_n that_o such_o and_o such_o thing_n only_o be_v fundamental_a on_o scripture_n only_o &_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v their_o assertion_n by_o scripture_n only_o behold_v contradiction_n upon_o contradiction_n for_o to_o say_v you_o ground_n your_o belief_n of_o the_o fundamental_a article_n or_o principle_n of_o faith_n not_o upon_o scripture_n and_o you_o ground_v it_o on_o scripture_n only_o be_v direct_a contradiction_n what_o you_o say_v that_o you_o believe_v such_o and_o such_o thing_n only_o to_o be_v fundamental_a &_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n be_v repugnant_a with_o what_o you_o contest_v more_o then_o in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n of_o your_o book_n that_o you_o neither_o know_v nor_o can_v know_v exact_o which_o point_n be_v fundamental_a 16._o but_o omit_v your_o contradiction_n i_o convince_v that_o scripture_n can_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n about_o fundamental_n finem_fw-la cap._n 2._o n._n 48_o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la which_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v know_v and_o believe_v before_o scripture_n i_o prove_v by_o what_o you_o write_v pag._n 70._o lin_v 29._o if_o our_o understanding_n do_v assent_v already_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v the_o scripture_n do_v that_o which_o be_v do_v before_o nay_o indeed_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o any_o more_o than_o a_o father_n can_v beget_v a_o son_n that_o he_o have_v already_o or_o a_o architect_n build_v a_o house_n that_o be_v build_v already_o or_o then_o this_o very_a world_n can_v be_v make_v again_o before_o it_o be_v unmake_v transubstantiation_n indeed_o be_v fruitful_a of_o such_o monster_n but_o they_o that_o have_v not_o swear_v themselves_o to_o the_o defence_n of_o error_n will_v easy_o perceive_v that_o iam_fw-la factum_fw-la facere_fw-la and_o factum_fw-la infectum_fw-la facere_fw-la be_v equal_o impossible_a these_o be_v your_o word_n from_o which_o i_o thus_o argue_v the_o scripture_n can_v be_v the_o rule_n and_o reason_n of_o believe_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v believe_v before_o we_o can_v receive_v scripture_n but_o before_o we_o believe_v scripture_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o christianity_n that_o christ_n be_v and_o teach_v such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n essential_a to_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o choose_v apostle_n to_o preach_v it_o who_o confirm_v it_o with_o new_a miracle_n and_o leave_v it_o we_o write_v in_o these_o book_n of_o scripture_n these_o thing_n and_o the_o like_v you_o confess_v must_v of_o necessity_n be_v know_v upon_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v scripture_n ergo_fw-la the_o assent_n we_o yield_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o article_n be_v not_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n tradition_n precedent_o to_o our_o belief_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o the_o christian_a tradition_n be_v the_o fundamental_a and_o essential_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v requisite_a not_o to_o the_o be_v of_o christian_a faith_n nor_o for_o the_o beget_n thereof_o but_o only_o ad_fw-la melius_fw-la esse_fw-la to_o the_o well_o be_v thereof_o to_o confirm_v we_o more_o &_o more_o in_o what_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n the_o five_o conviction_n 17._o cap._n 2._o n._n 19_o 9_o 19_o for_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o book_n n._n 9_o lin_v 15._o you_o write_v in_o all_o the_o controversy_n of_o protestant_n betwixt_o themselves_o there_o be_v a_o seem_a conflict_n of_o scripture_n with_o scripture_n reason_n with_o reason_n authority_n with_o authority_n which_o how_o it_o can_v subsist_v with_o manifest_a reveal_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o can_v well_o understand_v and_o cap._n 1._o n._n 13._o lin_v 25._o the_o contrary_a belief_n may_v be_v concern_v point_n wherein_o scripture_n may_v with_o so_o great_a probability_n be_v allege_v on_o both_o side_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o point_n not_o necessary_a that_o man_n of_o honest_a and_o upright_a hreart_n true_a lover_n of_o god_n and_o the_o truth_n such_o as_o desire_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o know_v god_n will_v and_o to_o do_v it_o may_v without_o any_o fault_n at_o all_o some_o go_v one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o and_o some_o and_o those_o as_o good_a man_n as_o any_o of_o the_o former_a suspend_v their_o judgement_n and_o expect_v some_o elias_n to_o solve_v doubt_n and_o reconcile_v repugnance_n and_o preface_n n._n 30._o there_o be_v no_o more_o certain_a sign_n that_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o evident_a than_o that_o honest_a understanding_n and_o indifferent_a man_n after_o a_o mature_a deliberation_n of_o the_o matter_n differ_v about_o it_o from_o this_o your_o confession_n that_o there_o be_v seem_a contradiction_n and_o conflict_n of_o one_o part_n of_o scripture_n with_o another_o which_o set_v good_a and_o honest_a man_n of_o your_o stamp_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n i_o gather_v three_o argument_n which_o convince_v that_o scripture_n by_o itself_o can_v
three_o argument_n as_o well_o to_o be_v brief_a as_o because_o these_o be_v so_o full_a convince_a and_o well_n ground_v even_o by_o such_o a_o adversary_n as_o you_o be_v that_o more_o will_v not_o be_v require_v the_o first_o conviction_n 1._o if_o the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n then_o be_v she_o a_o certain_a society_n of_o christian_n of_o one_o denomination_n of_o one_o obedience_n subject_a to_o one_o visible_a head_n in_o fallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n but_o the_o church_n be_v such_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n or_o such_o a_o guide_n in_o fundamental_o in_o this_o argument_n both_o proposition_n be_v you_o and_o i_o shall_v set_v down_o your_o word_n full_o whereby_o you_o not_o only_o deliver_v but_o also_o demonstrate_v they_o the_o major_n you_o acknowledge_v ca._n 2._o n._n 139._o you_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o wide_a difference_n betwixt_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o and_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o the_o former_a we_o grant_v for_o it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o ever_o but_o we_o utter_o deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o late_a for_o to_o say_v so_o be_v to_o oblige_v ourselves_o to_o find_v some_o certain_a society_n of_o man_n of_o who_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o nor_o in_o declare_v what_o be_v fundamental_a and_o what_o be_v not_o and_o consequent_o to_o make_v any_o church_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o will_v be_v to_o make_v it_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n she_o propose_v to_o be_v believe_v this_o therefore_o we_o deny_v both_o to_o your_o church_n &_o to_o all_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n that_o be_v indeed_o we_o deny_v it_o simple_o to_o any_o church_n for_o no_o church_n can_v be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o guide_n but_o only_o a_o church_n of_o some_o certain_a denomination_n for_o otherwise_o no_o man_n can_v possible_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o by_o a_o praeexamination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n controvert_v and_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o by_o the_o true_a doctrine_n to_o the_o church_n hereafter_o therefore_o when_o you_o hear_v protestant_n say_v the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_n you_o must_v not_o conceive_v they_o as_o if_o they_o mean_v as_o you_o do_v some_o society_n of_o christian_n which_o may_v be_v know_v by_o adhere_v to_o some_o one_o head_n for_o example_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o deliver_v the_o sequell_n of_o this_o proposition_n the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n which_o be_v in_o a_o word_n our_o whole_a catholic_a doctrine_n about_o the_o church_n that_o if_o that_o proposition_n be_v by_o you_o grant_v express_o and_o clear_o yea_o prove_v invincible_o from_o scripture_n you_o must_v return_v again_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o by_o your_o own_o judgement_n be_v damn_v to_o hell_n special_o because_o you_o repeat_v the_o same_o consequence_n of_o the_o grant_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n and_o both_o approve_v and_o prove_v they_o cap._n 3._o n._n 39_o lin_v 11._o speak_v to_o your_o adversary_n good_a sir_n you_o must_v needs_o do_v we_o this_o favour_n to_o be_v so_o acute_a as_o to_o distinguish_v between_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_n and_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v always_o a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_n we_o easy_o grant_v for_o it_o come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o a_o church_n but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o such_o a_o church_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n this_o we_o deny_v for_o this_o can_v be_v without_o settle_v a_o know_a infallibility_n in_o some_o one_o know_a society_n of_o christian_n as_o the_o greek_a or_o the_o roman_a or_o some_o other_o church_n by_o adhere_v to_o which_o guide_n man_n may_v be_v guide_v to_o believe_v aright_o in_o all_o fundamental_n a_o man_n that_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o mean_n of_o communicate_v his_o thought_n to_o other_o may_v yet_o in_o himself_o and_o to_o himself_o be_v infallible_a but_o he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o guide_n to_o other_o a_o man_n or_o a_o church_n that_o be_v invisible_a so_o that_o none_o can_v know_v how_o to_o repair_v to_o it_o for_o direction_n can_v not_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v unto_o himself_o infallible_a 2._o thus_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o clear_o and_o full_o what_o will_v follow_v if_o you_o grant_v the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n which_o sequell_n be_v so_o much_o deny_v and_o detest_a by_o you_o as_o one_o will_v think_v it_o be_v impossible_a you_o shall_v be_v so_o forgetful_a as_o to_o affirm_v it_o and_o yet_o you_o do_v clear_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o infallible_a in_o fundamental_n but_o also_o a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n be_v even_o by_o essence_n not_o only_o a_o believer_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n but_o also_o a_o teacher_n or_o mistress_n thereof_o cap._n 2._o n._n 164._o initio_fw-la the_o visible_a church_n shall_v always_o without_o fail_v propose_v so_o much_o of_o god_n revelation_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n yet_o it_o may_v sometime_o add_v thing_n hurtful_a nay_o in_o themselves_o damnable_a and_o cap._n 2._o n._n 77._o in_o fiae_fw-la &_o n._n 73._o initio_fw-la you_o grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n term_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n not_o only_o because_o by_o duty_n it_o be_v still_o the_o teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n though_o not_o so_o ever_o in_o fact_n but_o also_o because_o it_o always_o shall_v and_o will_v be_v so_o yet_o say_v you_o this_o be_v short_a to_o prove_v your_o intent_n that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n unless_o you_o can_v show_v that_o by_o truth_n be_v certain_o mean_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o all_o that_o be_v profitable_a absolute_o &_o simple_o all._n for_o that_o the_o true_a church_n always_o shall_v be_v the_o maintainer_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n you_o know_v we_o grant_v and_o ●●st_n grant_v for_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v so_o and_o any_o company_n of_o man_n be_v no_o more_o a_o church_n without_o it_o than_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v a_o man_n &_o not_o be_v reasonable_a thus_o you_o very_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o creature_n to_o be_v a_o man_n &_o not_o reasonable_a you_o deserve_v to_o carry_v away_o the_o title_n of_o a_o true_a unreasonable_a man_n from_o all_o man_n that_o hitherto_o have_v rank_v themselves_o in_o the_o number_n of_o writer_n you_o be_v a_o true_a man_n for_o that_o you_o deliver_v manifest_a truth_n make_v good_a by_o strong_a reason_n you_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a man_n in_o that_o you_o wilful_o and_o obstinate_o stand_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o contrary_a falsehood_n i_o will_v brief_o note_n first_o your_o contradiction_n second_o the_o sequels_fw-fr thereof_o 3._o in_o the_o word_n cite_v in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o and_o such_o a_o church_n as_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o grant_v the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v the_o former_a but_o not_o the_o late_a jest_v at_o your_o adversary_n as_o though_o his_o confound_v they_o do_v argue_v in_o he_o want_v of_o such_o a_o acute_a wit_n as_o you_o suppose_v yourself_o to_o have_v but_o in_o the_o second_o citation_n you_o do_v we_o the_o favour_n to_o be_v so_o acute_a so_o perspicacious_a so_o sharp-sighted_a as_o to_o penetrate_v into_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o out_o of_o that_o closet_n of_o truth_n pronounce_v that_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o and_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o be_v inseparable_o conjoin_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o to_o grant_v the_o former_a to_o the_o church_n and_o deny_v the_o late_a be_v to_o divide_v the_o church_n from_o its_o very_a essence_n for_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o be_v so_o acute_a as_o to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o and_o such_o a_o church_n as_o be_v always_o in_o fact_n without_o fail_v the_o teacher_n the_o proposer_n the_o maintainer_n in_o a_o word_n the_o
the_o common_a head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o indirect_a when_o he_o stand_v peremptory_a against_o the_o church_n either_o obstinate_o against_o her_o doctrine_n or_o contumacious_o against_o she_o command_v for_o such_o a_o one_o be_v hocipso_fw-la cut_v of_o and_o cast_v away_o out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n do_v declare_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o and_o make_v he_o know_v for_o such_o a_o one_o to_o they_o of_o the_o church_n this_o suppose_a i_o come_v to_o prove_v that_o they_o who_o separate_a or_o oppose_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v schismatic_n the_o first_o conviction_n 5._o you_o say_v cap._n 5._o n._n 36._o initio_fw-la for_o man_n to_o forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o they_o with_o who_o they_o agree_v in_o faith_n be_v the_o most_o formal_a &_o proper_a crime_n of_o schism_n very_o true_a thus_o you_o but_o protestant_n agree_v with_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o pretend_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v forsake_v her_o external_a communion_n for_o cap._n 5._o n._n 52._o initio_fw-la you_o speak_v thus_o to_o your_o adversary_n whereas_o you_o say_v that_o protestant_n divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n add_v which_o external_a communion_n be_v corrupt_v and_o we_o shall_v confess_v the_o accusation_n and_o glory_n in_o it_o and_o cap._n 5._o n._n 55._o as_o for_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n we_o have_v without_o scruple_n former_o grant_v that_o protestant_n do_v forsake_v it_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o protestant_n in_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v commit_v the_o proper_a and_o for_o maul_v crime_n of_o schism_n 6._o this_o syllogism_n do_v consist_v of_o proposition_n which_o be_v formal_o &_o verbal_o you_o yet_o because_o you_o falter_v and_o halt_v in_o the_o assertion_n of_o they_o contradict_v yourself_o to_o make_v this_o demonstration_n convince_a i_o will_v prove_v both_o the_o premise_n clear_o by_o such_o truth_n as_o you_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n that_o it_o be_v formal_a schism_n to_o forsake_v the_o visible_a church_n or_o her_o external_a communion_n which_o you_o grant_v in_o the_o word_n i_o cire_v you_o deny_v cap._n 5._o n._n 25._o lin_v 3._o in_o these_o word_n to_o your_o adversary_n whereas_o you_o take_v for_o grant_v as_o a_o undoubied_a truth_n that_o whosoever_o leave_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v schismatical_a i_o tell_v you_o sir_n you_o presume_v to_o much_o upon_o we_o and_o will_v have_v we_o grant_v that_o which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n in_o question_n behold_v now_o that_o be_v false_a which_o before_o you_o say_v be_v very_o true_a which_o also_o to_o be_v absolute_o true_a i_o prove_v by_o what_o you_o write_v cap._n 5._o n._n 45_o lin_v 16._o a_o man_n may_v possible_o leave_v some_o opinion_n or_o practice_n of_o a_o church_n former_o common_a to_o himself_o and_o other_o and_o continue_v still_o a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n provide_v that_o what_o he_o forsake_v be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v and_o c._n 3._o n._n 66._o lin_v 9_o you_o may_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n nor_o depart_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o make_v it_o so_o to_o be_v this_o you_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o external_a communion_n that_o be_v external_a society_n fellowship_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o subordination_n to_o the_o common_a head_n and_o supreme_a external_a authority_n thereof_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n wherein_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o church_n this_o be_v clear_a because_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o human_a organical_a body_n not_o only_o to_o have_v a_o multitude_n of_o member_n local_o lay_v together_o in_o one_o heap_n but_o also_o that_o they_o be_v knit_v and_o compact_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o body_n by_o joint_a subordination_n to_o the_o head_n so_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o every_o moral_a or_o mystical_a body_n not_o only_o to_o have_v a_o multitude_n of_o member_n or_o person_n but_o also_o that_o the_o person_n member_n and_o subject_n be_v knit_v together_o and_o unite_v in_o the_o society_n of_o one_o communion_n that_o be_v of_o one_o common_a union_n of_o subordination_n to_o the_o head_n 7._o and_o this_o communion_n or_o common_a subjection_n must_v in_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v external_a and_o visible_a because_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o external_a and_o visible_a society_n or_o body_n which_o be_v prove_v because_o you_o say_v cap._n 3._o n._n 78._o that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o pillar_n that_o be_v still_o in_o fact_n a_o proposer_n mantayner_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n but_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essential_a necessity_n of_o a_o teach_a church_n to_o be_v visible_a and_o external_a as_o you_o suppose_v cap._n 3._o n._n 39_o lin_v 23._o a_o church_n that_o be_v invisible_a so_o that_o none_o can_v repair_v to_o it_o for_o direction_n can_v not_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n that_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o truth_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v in_o itself_o infallible_a wherefore_o external_a communion_n or_o common_a union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o subjection_n to_o one_o common_a head_n or_o visible_a supreme_a govern_v authority_n be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v the_o church_n a_o church_n but_o protester_n forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n the_o common_a union_n &_o knot_n with_o their_o fellow-member_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o subjection_n to_o one_o visible_a govern_v church-authority_n and_o make_v to_o themselves_o new_a conventicle_n and_o church_n under_o new_a governor_n and_o form_n of_o government_n as_o be_v notorious_a it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o they_o forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n because_o in_o their_o judgement_n corrupt_v forsake_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n wherein_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n do_v consist_v in_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v the_o church_n a_o church_n and_o consequent_o be_v schismatic_n the_o second_o conviction_n 8._o it_o be_v you_o say_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v by_o office_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n that_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o truth_n &_o of_o all_o truth_n &_o always_o in_o fact_n the_o teacher_n and_o guide_n of_o man_n in_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n consequent_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v this_o office_n 7●_n cap._n 3._o n._n 7●_n and_o to_o be_v still_o in_o act_n a_o direstour_n of_o man_n to_o heaven_n but_o you_o say_v pag._n 163._o lin_v 6._o that_o church_n alone_o can_v perform_v the_o office_n of_o guide_n or_o director_n which_o be_v of_o one_o denomination_n that_o be_v a_o settle_a certain_a society_n of_o christian_n distinguishable_a from_o all_o other_o by_o adhere_v to_o such_o a_o bishop_n for_o their_o guide_n in_o fundamental_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v of_o one_o denomination_n adhere_v to_o one_o common_a bishop_n as_o to_o their_o guide_n in_o fundamental_n this_o suppose_v that_o protestant_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n schismatic_n &_o alien_n from_o the_o only_a church_n that_o can_v be_v the_o guide_n to_o heaven_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o prove_v you_o grant_v it_o finem_fw-la it_o cap._n 5._o n._n 27._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la pag._n 264._o lin_v 4._o put_v case_n i_o shall_v grant_v of_o mere_a favour_n that_o there_o must_v be_v always_o some_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n free_a from_o all_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o that_o protestant_n have_v not_o always_o such_o a_o church_n it_o will_v indeed_o follow_v that_o i_o must_v not_o be_v a_o protestant_n but_o that_o i_o must_v be_v a_o papist_n certain_o it_o will_v follow_v by_o no_o better_a consequence_n than_o this_o if_o you_o will_v leave_v england_n your_o must_v of_o necessity_n go_v to_o rome_n thus_o you_o from_o which_o saying_n i_o argue_v if_o there_o must_v be_v always_o some_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n free_a from_o all_o error_n in_o doctrine_n subject_a to_o one_o visible_a head_n and_o guide_v than_o you_o must_v
through_o sin_n of_o the_o will_n as_o million_o of_o they_o you_o fear_v do_v i_o pray_v you_o be_v there_o any_o hope_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v what_o hope_v say_v you_o spes_fw-la est_fw-la re●_n incertae_fw-la nomen_fw-la there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o these_o protestant_n shall_v be_v save_v this_o you_o teach_v for_o have_v pag._n 136._o endeavour_v to_o excuse_v their_o contention_n by_o lay_v the_o fault_n on_o scripture_n seem_v conflict_n with_o itself_o fine_a itself_o cap._n 3._o n._n 9_o aliter_fw-la 19_o in_o fine_a pag._n 137._o lin_v 1._o you_o add_v beside_o though_o we_o grant_v that_o scripture_n reason_n and_o authority_n be_v all_o on_o one_o side_n &_o the_o apparence_n of_o the_o other_o side_n all_o answerable_a yet_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o strange_a power_n that_o education_n &_o preiudices_fw-la instill_v by_o it_o have_v over_o even_o excellent_a understanding_n we_o may_v well_o imagine_v that_o many_o truth_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v reveal_v plain_o enough_o be_v yet_o to_o such_o or_o such_o a_o man_n prepossess_v with_o contrary_a opinion_n not_o reveal_v plain_o neither_o doubti_n but_o god_n who_o know_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v and_o what_o passion_n we_o be_v subject_a unto_o will_v compassionate_v our_o infirmity_n and_o not_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o we_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o all_o thing_n consider_v be_v unavoidable_a thus_o you_o who_o be_v like_a as_o like_a may_v be_v to_o that_o naughty_a servant_n in_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v obtain_v of_o his_o lord_n remission_n of_o a_o debt_n of_o ten_o thousand_o talent_n present_o take_v his_o fellow_n servant_n by_o the_o throat_n and_o will_v have_v choke_v he_o for_o a_o debt_n of_o a_o hundred_o penny_n 32._o let_v we_o set_v before_o we_o two_o man_n the_o one_o a_o protester_n who_o through_o the_o preiudices_fw-la of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n on_o his_o own_o wit_n through_o proud_a contempt_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n of_o general_a counsel_n of_o consent_n of_o father_n instill_v into_o he_o by_o education_n err_v against_o plain_a scripture_n on_o the_o other_o a_o roman_a catholic_n who_o through_o reverence_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n to_o general_a counsel_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n instill_v into_o he_o by_o education_n neglect_v to_o hear_v your_o wisdom_n and_o thereby_o be_v keep_v in_o some_o error_n against_o scripture_n which_o by_o hear_v a_o man_n of_o so_o great_a learning_n and_o religion_n he_o may_v as_o you_o think_v have_v avoid_v let_v any_o man_n of_o discretion_n and_o conscience_n be_v judge_n whether_o the_o former_a errant_a do_v not_o sin_v ten_o hundred_o thousand_o time_n that_o be_v incomparable_o more_o than_o the_o late_a and_o yet_o you_o leave_v little_a hope_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o late_a catholic_n ignorant_a good-soule_n who_o if_o he_o sin_n at_o all_o in_o neglect_v your_o wisdom_n persuade_v he_o to_o trust_v his_o own_o wit_n sin_v only_o out_o of_o a_o too_o low_a conceit_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o own_o wit_n and_o through_o to_o much_o respect_n to_o general_a counsel_n and_o christian_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n whereas_o that_o other_o protest_v proud_a fool_n who_o both_o obstinate_o and_o erroneous_o resist_v all_o christian_a church_n general_a counsel_n and_o consent_n of_o father_n through_o confidence_n on_o his_o own_o wit_n through_o contempt_n of_o all_o other_o instill_v into_o he_o by_o education_n shall_v you_o say_v without_o doubt_n be_v save_v 33._o god_n say_v you_o be_v infinite_o just_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o papist_n if_o they_o err_v though_o but_o of_o only_a negligence_n and_o unwillingnes_n to_o seek_v the_o truth_n but_o he_o be_v infinite_o good_a and_o therefore_o though_o we_o protester_n hold_v error_n against_o plain_a scripture_n out_o of_o passion_n and_o pride_n aversion_n contempt_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o instill_v by_o education_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n god_n know_v that_o to_o these_o passion_n of_o pride_n presumption_n contempt_n we_o by_o education_n be_v subject_a and_o so_o without_o doubt_n will_v compassionate_v our_o infirmity_n and_o not_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o we_o for_o such_o thing_n which_o all_o thing_n consider_v be_v unavoidable_a poor_a man_n blind_v with_o self_n conceit_n who_o think_v your_o will_n and_o pleasure_n shall_v at_o the_o last_o day_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o divine_a justice_n who_o vain_o flatter_v yourselves_o and_o think_v you_o may_v deal_v with_o god_n as_o you_o do_v with_o us._n no_o no_o you_o will_v suffer_v we_o to_o speak_v much_o truth_n together_o if_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n against_o you_o or_o you_o be_v willing_a it_o shall_v be_v truth_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n most_o just_a sentence_n you_o shall_v endure_v and_o suffer_v will_v you_o will_v you_o though_o it_o be_v most_o hateful_a to_o you_o and_o terrible_a against_o you_o then_o you_o will_v find_v that_o as_o no_o one_o sentence_n be_v often_o repeat_v by_o the_o judge_n live_v in_o this_o world_n so_o none_o will_v be_v find_v more_o true_a at_o the_o last_o day_n than_o this_o he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v and_o he_o that_o exalt_v himself_o shall_v be_v humble_v it_o be_v then_o manifest_a that_o with_o extreme_a malice_n partiality_n injustice_n you_o separate_v from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n the_o catho_n lique_fw-la church_n from_o which_o you_o be_v separate_v and_o so_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o of_o most_o malicious_a and_o damnable_a schism_n that_o protester_n be_v heretic_n chap._n vii_o this_o be_v part_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o last_o chapter_n but_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v distinct_a to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o one_o chapter_n or_o matter_n hold_v we_o ever_o long_o i_o have_v divide_v the_o former_a into_o two_o to_o make_v the_o title_n good_a we_o must_v declare_v &_o suppose_v the_o definition_n and_o nature_n of_o heresy_n christian_n faith_n stand_v upon_o two_o ground_n or_o principle_n divine_a revelation_n and_o the_o external_a proposition_n thereof_o for_o we_o can_v by_o christian_a faith_n believe_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o reveal_v of_o god_n nor_o what_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n be_v credible_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v credit_v and_o believe_v of_o we_o till_o the_o same_o be_v external_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o some_o credible_a witness_n for_o as_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n infinite_o credible_a and_o worthy_a of_o credit_n so_o likewise_o our_o persuasion_n can_v rest_v firm_o upon_o the_o proposition_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v such_o thing_n except_o the_o proponent_n be_v evident_o credible_a of_o itself_o this_o you_o affirm_v pag._n 62._o n._n 25._o &_o pag._n 69._o lin_v 7._o 45._o cap_n 2._o n._n 25_o &_o n._n 45._o that_o our_o inquisition_n of_o what_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n never_o cease_v till_o at_o last_o we_o find_v a_o principle_n to_o be_v rest_v on_o for_o itself_o which_o may_v be_v a_o rock_n and_o ground_n unto_o our_o belief_n hence_o there_o be_v two_o adversary_n of_o christian_a faith_n ethnicisme_n and_o heresy_n ethnicisme_n oppose_v and_o deni_v express_o christian_n doctrine_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n and_o call_v in_o question_n the_o authority_n of_o god_n heresy_n oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o christian_a proponent_n of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o though_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v christian_a doctrine_n &_o divine_a revelation_n yet_o in_o the_o question_n which_o in_o particular_a they_o be_v he_o will_v be_v his_o own_o chooser_n as_o the_o word_n heresy_n do_v declare_v be_v in_o english_a the_o same_n as_o choice_n 2._o whosoever_o then_o refuse_v to_o believe_v any_o doctrine_n propose_v to_o he_o by_o the_o last_o christian_a principle_n and_o rule_n evident_o credible_a of_o itself_o such_o a_o man_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n as_o who_o we_o can_v make_v to_o see_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n shine_a at_o noon_n day_n we_o leave_v he_o for_o a_o blind_a man_n who_o we_o can_v make_v to_o apprehend_v the_o prime_a principle_n of_o reason_n evident_a of_o themselves_o we_o leave_v he_o for_o a_o sot_n and_o uncapable_a of_o learning_n so_o who_o we_o can_v win_v to_o believe_v what_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o last_o and_o uttermost_a evidence_n christian_a proposition_n can_v possible_o have_v we_o leave_v he_o for_o wilful_o blind_a for_o one_o void_a of_o faith_n for_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n for_o what_o can_v we_o do_v to_o he_o more_o if_o such_o a_o one_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n that_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o
definition_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n now_o you_o and_o your_o protester_n hold_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n propose_v by_o the_o mere_a in_o ward_n evidence_n of_o the_o text_n only_o and_o alone_o to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o uttermost_a evidence_n of_o credibility_n a_o christian_a doctrine_n can_v have_v the_o rock_n and_o pillar_n of_o belief_n ergo_fw-la when_o you_o accuse_v each_o other_o of_o disbelieve_v evident_a and_o plain_a scripture_n you_o accuse_v each_o other_o of_o the_o formal_a &_o proper_a crime_n of_o heresy_n so_o that_o protester_n be_v according_a to_o s._n paul_n delinquisher_n of_o the_o church_n convince_a and_o condemn_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n the_o second_o conviction_n 10._o they_o that_o protest_v against_o the_o pillar_n ground_n rock_n of_o that_o credit_n and_o authority_n which_o do_v up_o hold_v propose_v and_o expose_v all_o truth_n of_o salvation_n unto_o christian_a belief_n and_o make_v the_o same_o worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o err_v fundamental_o and_o be_v damn_v heretic_n this_o be_v manifest_a by_o what_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o you_o protest_v against_o such_o a_o rock_n for_o you_o protest_v against_o the_o catholic_a present_a church_n of_o every_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n medium_n cap._n 5._o n._n ●●_o circa_fw-la medium_n cap._n 5._o n._n 91._o paulo_fw-la post_fw-la medium_n as_o subject_a to_o fundamental_a and_o damnable_a error_n and_o ever_o stain_v even_o in_o the_o second_o age_n immediate_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o universal_a error_n who_o catholic_n external_a communion_n you_o have_v forsake_v because_o universal_o pollute_v with_o superstition_n as_o you_o confess_v and_o profess_v to_o glory_v therein_o now_o that_o the_o present_a catholic_a universal_a church_n in_o every_o age_n be_v the_o pillar_n 78._o pillar_n cap._n 5._o n._n 52._o cap._n 3._o n._n 77._o &_o n._n 78._o ground_n rock_n that_o be_v teacher_n of_o all_o christian_a truth_n by_o duty_n and_o office_n and_o in_o fact_n always_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n that_o be_v the_o maintainer_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n which_o she_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o she_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n 139._o proposal_n pag._n 108._o n._n 139._o cap._n 2._o n._n 139._o these_o thing_n you_o grant_v as_o have_v be_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o five_o chapter_n ergo_fw-la protester_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n as_o over_o thrower_n of_o the_o rock_n pillar_n &_o last_o principle_n of_o christian_a faith_n 11._o moreover_o you_o grant_v tradition_n universal_a to_o be_v the_o last_o principle_n of_o christian_a faith_n evident_a of_o itself_o and_o so_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o all_o truth_n fit_a to_o be_v rest_v on_o but_o by_o make_v the_o church_n fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o deliver_v apostolical_a tradition_n you_o destroy_v this_o rock_n and_o make_v the_o same_o no_o ground_n to_o be_v rest_v on_o in_o any_o kind_n of_o truth_n for_o say_v you_o a_o authority_n subject_a 12._o subject_a cap._n 3._o n_o 36._o lin_v 12._o to_o error_n can_v be_v a_o firm_a foundation_n of_o my_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o cap._n 5._o n._n 91._o lin_v 40._o express_o to_o this_o purpose_n you_o say_v if_o the_o church_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o corruption_n as_o we_o pretend_v who_o can_v possible_o warrant_v we_o that_o part_n of_o this_o corruption_n do_v not_o get_v in_o and_o prevail_v in_o the_o 5._o or_o 4._o or_o 3._o or_o 2._o age_n etc._n etc._n the_o error_n of_o the_o millenaries_n be_v you_o say_v in_o the_o second_o age_n universal_a and_o what_o be_v do_v in_o some_o be_v possible_a in_o other_o now_o see_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o four_o ghospel_n and_o our_o whole_a christian_a faith_n depend_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n you_o that_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o tradition_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o fallible_a how_o do_v not_o you_o err_v most_o fundamental_o destroy_v the_o last_o stay_n and_o only_a rock_n to_o be_v rest_v on_o by_o christian_a belief_n tradition_n primitive_a universal_a be_v uncertain_a and_o fallible_a what_o certainty_n can_v christian_n have_v of_o the_o scripture_n be_v from_o god_n church_n god_n pag._n 63._o lin_v 34._o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o only_a mean_n of_o our_o certainty_n in_o this_o point_n be_v uncertain_a the_o three_o conviction_n 12._o if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o pillar_n ground_n rock_n that_o be_v the_o teacher_n both_o by_o duty_n and_o in_o deed_n of_o all_o christian_a truth_n then_o protester_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v heretic_n as_o you_o grant_v and_o must_v needs_o grant_v but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a and_o prove_v evident_o by_o what_o you_o grant_v and_o by_o what_o have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v consequent_a of_o your_o grant_n that_o there_o must_v be_v always_o a_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n always_o in_o fact_n even_o by_o essence_n the_o teacher_n of_o all_o fundamental_a truth_n visible_o discern_v from_o other_o christian_a society_n by_o this_o note_n of_o unity_n and_o subordination_n to_o one._n now_o if_o there_o must_v be_v always_o such_o a_o one_o church_n the_o roman_a must_v of_o necessity_n be_v this_o church_n 2._o supra_fw-la c._n 6._o convict_v 2._o this_o consequence_n you_o deny_v as_o we_o note_v before_o which_o now_o i_o make_v good_a by_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n which_o can_v must_v and_o in_o fact_n do_v perform_v the_o office_n of_o guide_n and_o director_n must_v be_v of_o one_o denomination_n subject_a to_o one_o certain_a bishop_n and_o also_o universal_a apostolical_a one_o &_o the_o same_o every_o where_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o there_o be_v no_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n in_o the_o world_n note_v with_o these_o mark_n but_o only_o the_o roman_a ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a and_o only_o the_o roman_a be_v that_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n and_o obedience_n 18._o cap._n 3._o n._n 39_o lin_v 18._o wherein_o a_o know_a infallibility_n be_v settle_v by_o adhere_v to_o which_o man_n be_v guide_v to_o believe_v aright_o in_o all_o fundamental_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n i_o prove_v by_o what_o you_o write_v pag._n 91._o 101._o 91._o cap._n 2._o n._n 101._o where_o you_o apply_v a_o testimony_n of_o s._n austin_n against_o we_o every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o you_o so_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o all_o those_o on_o who_o consent_n we_o ground_n our_o belief_n of_o scripture_n so_o turbulent_a that_o you_o damn_v all_o to_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o hell_n that_o any_o way_n differ_v from_o you_o etc._n etc._n last_o so_o new_a in_o many_o of_o your_o doctrine_n as_o in_o the_o lawfulness_n and_o expedience_n of_o debar_v the_o laity_n the_o sacramental_a cup_n the_o lawfulness_n &_o expedience_n of_o your_o latin_a service_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n the_o pope_n infallibility_n authority_n over_o king_n etc._n etc._n so_o new_a i_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o scripture_n which_o contain_v or_o rather_o be_v our_o religion_n and_o the_o sole_a and_o adequate_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n i_o say_v every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o you_o so_o few_o so_o turbulent_a so_o new_a can_v produce_v nothing_o deserve_v authority_n 13._o this_o whole_a discourse_n though_o the_o last_o two_o line_n only_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o purpose_n i_o have_v produce_v at_o large_a that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v by_o this_o pattern_n for_o all_o your_o book_n be_v of_o the_o same_o stile_n method_n and_o pith_n what_o a_o kilcow-disputant_n you_o be_v that_o be_v a_o curse_a cow_n with_o short_a horn_n yea_o without_o horn_n at_o all_o for_o your_o heart_n be_v not_o so_o curse_v and_o fierce_a in_o utter_v what_o you_o conceive_v to_o the_o discredit_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o your_o understanding_n be_v as_o weak_a and_o faint_a in_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v you_o have_v heap_v together_o many_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o you_o traduce_v as_o novelty_n but_o in_o all_o your_o discourse_n there_o be_v not_o any_o strength_n of_o argument_n to_o show_v they_o to_o be_v such_o so_o we_o can_v say_v of_o you_o cornu_n ferret_v ille_fw-la caveo_fw-la for_o you_o strike_v we_o only_o with_o the_o bare_a forehead_n of_o impudent_a assertion_n without_o proof_n yea_o without_o offer_n or_o proffer_v of_o proof_n nor_o can_v you_o prove_v they_o these_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n all_o manifest_a christian_a truth_n which_o you_o will_v have_v take_v upon_o your_o bare_a word_n to_o be_v error_n for_o how_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o
church_n but_o whether_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o by_o christ_n appointment_n he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o have_v peruse_v brere_o i_o can_v find_v any_o protestant_a confess_v any_o one_o father_n to_o have_v concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o you_o in_o this_o point_n thus_o you_o from_o these_o word_n we_o have_v this_o great_a truth_n which_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o ancient_a record_n &_o universal_a tradition_n be_v most_o certain_a and_o undeniable_a that_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n for_o the_o time_n be_v ever_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n with_o authority_n over_o it_o in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n you_o add_v that_o the_o point_n here_o issuable_a and_o controvert_v betwixt_o protestant_n and_o we_o be_v not_o whether_o he_o have_v his_o authority_n for_o hereof_o you_o seem_v to_o suppose_v that_o protestant_n make_v no_o controversy_n but_o only_o whether_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o our_o lord_n appointment_n he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o i_o assume_v if_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v so_o by_o divine_a right_n &_o christ_n appointment_n and_o can_v not_o be_v so_o by_o human_a institution_n how_o prove_v i_o this_o even_o by_o your_o own_o word_n pag._n 60_o nu_fw-la 22._o for_o the_o decide_n of_o civil_a controversy_n man_n may_v appoint_v themselves_o a_o judge_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n this_o office_n may_v be_v give_v to_o none_o but_o who_o god_n have_v design_v for_o it_o thus_o you_o hence_o i_o enforce_v the_o conclusion_n by_o join_v together_o in_o form_n of_o discourse_n your_o two_o proposition_n s._n peter_n and_o the_o roman_a bishop_n his_o successor_n be_v ever_o hold_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n the_o head_n the_o pastor_n the_o judge_n of_o the_o catholic_a militant_a church_n but_o he_o can_v not_o be_v so_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o man_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v so_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n 22._o and_o i_o wonder_v what_o do_v blear_v your_o eye_n in_o peruse_v brere_o that_o you_o can_v not_o see_v in_o he_o so_o much_o as_o one_o protestant_n confess_v any_o one_o father_n to_o have_v concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n for_o do_v he_o not_o cite_v the_o centurist_n that_o be_v a_o mess_n of_o protestant_n at_o once_o who_o reprehend_v tertullian_n for_o agree_v herein_o with_o we_o say_v basileae_n say_v centur_fw-la 3._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 84._o lin_v 60._o edit_n basileae_n tertullian_n do_v erroneous_o think_v the_o key_n to_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o peter_n alone_o and_o the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v on_o he_o who_o charge_n s._n cyprian_n for_o his_o affirm_v 4._o affirm_v centur_fw-la 3._o c_o 4._o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v build_v upon_o peter_n and_o one_o 60._o one_o col._n 84._o lin_v 60._o chair_n found_v by_o our_o lord_n voice_n upon_o the_o rock_n and_o that_o ●4_n that_o col._n 84_o lin_v ●4_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o for_o call_v peter_n chair_n 19_o chair_n col._n 84_o li._n 19_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o priestly_a unity_n arise_v and_o last_o for_o his_o teach_n say_v they_o without_o any_o foundation_n of_o scripture_n that_o 51._o that_o col_fw-fr 84._o lin_v 51._o the_o roman_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o other_o the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o likewise_o reprehend_v as_o a_o corrupt_a say_n concern_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o of_o irenaeus_n all_o church_n ought_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o a_o more_o powerable_a principality_n 23._o you_o more_o than_o once_o fall_v upon_o etc._n upon_o cap._n 6._o n._n 30._o this_o be_v false_o translate_v say_v you_o for_o convenire_fw-la ad_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la every_o body_n know_v signify_v no_o more_o than_o to_o resort_v etc._n etc._n cardinal_n peron_n &_o his_o noble_a translatresse_n about_o this_o place_n ad_fw-la quam_fw-la propier_n potentiorem_fw-la principatitatem_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la omnem_fw-la convenire_fw-la ecclepam_fw-la which_o they_o turn_v thus_o in_o english_a to_o which_o church_n it_o be_v necessaerie_n that_o every_o church_n shall_v agree_v in_o regard_n of_o more_o powerful_a principality_n you_o say_v they_o make_v bold_a with_o the_o latin_a tongue_n as_o though_o convenire_fw-la do_v signify_v to_o agree_v whereas_o it_o do_v signify_v to_o resort_v hence_o of_o this_o sentence_n ad_fw-la quam_fw-la propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la omnem_fw-la convenire_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la you_o make_v this_o construction_n to_o this_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o powerful_a principality_n it_o have_v over_o all_o the_o adjacent_a church_n there_o be_v and_o away_o have_v be_v a_o necessity_n of_o perpetual_a recourse_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a round_o about_o thus_o you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v no_o better_o a_o grammarien_n then_o you_o be_v a_o christian_a who_o ever_o do_v deny_v that_o convenire_fw-la according_a to_o the_o property_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n do_v signify_v to_o agree_v rather_o than_o to_o resort_v i_o think_v the_o lady_n translatresse_n and_o every_o lady_n that_o understand_v english_a know_v that_o to_o resort_v be_v to_o repair_v frequent_o to_o a_o place_n which_z convenire_fw-la do_v no_o more_o signify_v then_o to_o leap_v over_o a_o ditch_n 24._o but_o this_o be_v your_o audacity_n to_o make_v bold_a with_o latin_a and_o then_o rail_v against_o other_o who_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o property_n of_o the_o latin_a whereof_o i_o can_v give_v another_o exemple_n s._n austin_n against_o some_o abuse_n in_o his_o time_n say_v quae_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la libris_fw-la saluberrimè_fw-la praecepta_fw-la sunt_fw-la minùs_fw-la curantur_fw-la this_o say_v you_o i_o suppose_v i_o may_v 10._o may_v cap._n 2_o n._n 47._o pag._n 156._o edit_fw-la 1._o pag._n 150._o lin_v 6._o edit_fw-la 2._o cap._n 3._o n._n 16._o li._n 10._o very_o well_o render_v in_o our_o saviour_n word_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v aside_o thus_o you_o and_o upon_o this_o false_a translation_n you_o slander_n and_o rail_v at_o the_o church_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n as_o universal_o superstitious_a for_o two_o page_n together_o 25._o item_n pag._n 176._o n._n 76._o in_o this_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timon_n thy_o quomodo_fw-la oporteat_fw-la te_fw-la in_o demo_fw-la dei_fw-la conversari_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la &_o columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la you_o will_v have_v columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n with_o which_o it_o agreee_v in_o case_n but_o to_o timothy_n which_o be_v the_o accusative_a case_n by_o subaudition_n of_o the_o particle_n as_o te_fw-la ut_fw-la columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d just_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o ut_fw-la scias_fw-la quomodo_fw-la oporteat_fw-la te_fw-la subdi_fw-la archiepiscopo_fw-la cantuariensi_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la successor_n sancti_fw-la augustini_fw-la primas_fw-la angliae_fw-la amicus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la you_o shall_v contend_v that_o amicus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la be_v refer_v from_o his_o grace_n to_o yourself_o by_o this_o construction_n quomodo_fw-la oporteat_fw-la te_fw-la amicus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la subdi_fw-la etc._n etc._n 26._o but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o place_n of_o s._n irenaus_n i_o say_v that_o convenire_fw-la do_v signity_n to_o agree_v not_o only_a when_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o thing_n by_o the_o preposition_n cum_fw-la as_o conuenire_fw-la cum_fw-la alique_fw-la but_o also_o many_o time_n when_o it_o be_v refer_v by_o the_o preposition_n ad._n when_o cicero_n say_v sylla_n say_v pro_fw-la sylla_n conuenit_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la haec_fw-la contumelia_fw-la will_v you_o translate_v this_o reproach_n resort_v to_o he_o and_o not_o agree_v to_o he_o when_o he_o say_v 19_o say_v lib._n 3._o de_fw-la finibus_fw-la de_fw-fr re_fw-mi rustica_fw-la c_o 6._o varro_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 19_o conuenit_fw-la optimè_fw-la ad_fw-la pedem_fw-la cothurnus_fw-la will_v you_o translate_v the_o buskin_n resort_v to_o the_o foot_n and_o not_o agree_v with_o the_o foot_n when_o cato_n and_o varro_n say_v as_o they_o do_v often_o conveniunt_fw-la hae_fw-la vites_fw-la ad_fw-la quemuis_fw-la agrum_fw-la will_v you_o translate_v these_o vine-tree_n resort_v to_o any_o soil_n and_o not_o agree_v with_o any_o soil_n when_o plautus_n say_v conveniebat_fw-la ad_fw-la vaginam_fw-la tuam_fw-la machaera_n militis_fw-la will_v you_o translate_v the_o blade_n of_o the_o soldier_n resort_v to_o thy_o scabbard_n and_o not_o agree_v with_o thy_o scabbard_n sure_o if_o you_o do_v you_o may_v give_v the_o lady_n translatresse_n just_a cause_n to_o smile_v at_o your_o simplicity_n as_o now_o she_o have_v
be_v lawful_o call_v and_o proceed_v orderly_a be_v great_a and_o awful_a representation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n the_o church_n have_v on_o earth_n that_o their_o authority_n be_v immediate_o derive_v and_o delegated_a from_o christ_n that_o no_o christian_a be_v exempt_v from_o their_o censure_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o their_o decree_n bound_v all_o person_n to_o external_a obedience_n and_o may_v not_o be_v question_v but_o upon_o evident_a reason_n behold_v d._n potter_n cry_v we_o protestant_n say_v that_o general_n counsel_n be_v authorize_v of_o god_n to_o pronounce_v a_o judicial_a definitive_a sentence_n oblige_v all_o person_n and_o you_o cry_v the_o contrary_a we_o say_v and_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o god_n have_v not_o give_v any_o such_o authority_n to_o any_o society_n council_n or_o congregation_n of_o man_n how_o do_v you_o not_o fear_v lest_o by_o thus_o contradict_v your_o potter_n 45._o isa_n c._n 45._o you_o incur_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o prophet_n vaequi_fw-la contradicis_fw-la fictori_fw-la tuo_fw-la testa_fw-la de_fw-la samijs_fw-la terrae_fw-la woe_n unto_o thou_o that_o dare_v contradict_v thy_o potter_n though_o thou_o be_v but_o samosatenian_n but_o samosatenian_n a_o samian_a potsherd_a 31._o but_o i_o can_v easy_o make_v you_o friend_n with_o the_o doctor_n show_v that_o else_o where_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o agree_v with_o he_o that_o counsel_n be_v authorize_v of_o god_n to_o pronounce_v a_o definitive_a oblige_a sentence_n c._n 4._o n._n 18._o in_o fine_a i_o willing_o confess_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_a and_o oblige_a that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace-sake_n hence_o i_o thus_o argue_v christian_a counsel_n have_v power_n to_o pronounce_v a_o judicial_a definitive_a oblige_a sentence_n as_o you_o confess_v and_o from_o that_o obligation_n you_o except_o no_o christian_a and_o consequent_o they_o can_v bind_v all_o person_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o least_o to_o outward_a submission_n and_o external_a obedience_n for_o peace-sake_n but_o none_o be_v fit_a to_o pronounce_v such_o a_o sentence_n but_o such_o a_o congregation_n or_o society_n of_o man_n as_o be_v by_o god_n authorize_v thereto_o as_o you_o also_o affirm_v ergo_fw-la a_o christian_a council_n or_o convocation_n of_o bishop_n be_v authorize_v of_o god_n to_o pronounce_v a_o judicial_a definitive_a sentence_n oblige_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n 32._o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v with_o d._n potter_n that_o such_o counsel_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o so_o may_v be_v question_v or_o reject_v upon_o evident_a reason_n and_o that_o they_o do_v bind_v we_o to_o external_a obedience_n for_o peace_n sake_n but_o not_o to_o a_o inward_a assent_n that_o their_o decree_n be_v true_a you_o contradict_v what_o you_o write_v pag._n 59_o n._n 17._o in_o civil_a controversy_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n or_o not_o be_v resist_v it_o but_o not_o always_o to_o believe_v it_o just_a but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n such_o a_o judge_n be_v require_v who_o we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v to_o have_v judge_v right_o so_o that_o in_o civil_a controversy_n every_o honest_a understanding_n man_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o judge_n but_o in_o religion_n none_o but_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a now_o see_v you_o say_v cap._n 2._o n._n 22._o that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o office_n of_o judge_n may_v be_v give_v to_o none_o but_o who_o god_n have_v design_v for_o it_o a_o general_n council_n which_o have_v the_o office_n of_o judge_n to_o pronounce_v a_o judicial_a oblige_a sentence_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v infallible_a and_o bound_v christian_n not_o only_o to_o outward_a submission_n but_o also_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o have_v judge_v right_a and_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n except_o you_o will_v say_v that_o god_n do_v assign_v and_o authorise_v such_o judge_n as_o be_v not_o sit_v for_o the_o office_n nor_o such_o as_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n do_v require_v beside_o to_o say_v that_o general_n counsel_n have_v authority_n immediate_o from_o christ_n to_o bind_v all_o person_n to_o external_a obedience_n and_o yet_o that_o such_o counsel_n be_v fallible_a and_o false_a many_o time_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v appoint_v such_o authority_n &_o government_n in_o his_o church_n by_o the_o force_n whereof_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o dissemble_v and_o play_v the_o hypocrite_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o example_n general_n counsel_n have_v define_v that_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v lawful_a &_o command_v all_o christian_n to_o approve_v and_o practice_v it_o you_o be_v persuade_v in_o conscience_n that_o this_o be_v unlawful_a a_o sacrilegious_a maym_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o by_o your_o doctrine_n that_o counsel_n bound_v at_o the_o least_o to_o outward_a submission_n and_o external_a obedience_n you_o be_v bind_v outward_o to_o practice_v it_o and_o to_o make_v a_o show_n as_o if_o you_o do_v judge_v the_o same_o lawful_a it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a truth_n &_o the_o contrary_a impious_a that_o general_n counsel_n appoint_v of_o christ_n as_o the_o high_a external_a tribunal_n the_o church_n have_v on_o earth_n and_o which_o bound_v all_o person_n to_o external_a obedience_n be_v infallible_a and_o if_o they_o be_v infallible_a than_o they_o who_o move_v with_o conceit_n of_o their_o private_a skill_n in_o scripture_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v get_v by_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o wit_n &_o discourse_n or_o by_o singular_a illumination_n from_o god_n reject_v their_o judgement_n and_o open_o potest_fw-la that_o they_o may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v be_v prove_v damnable_a heretic_n the_o eight_o conviction_n 33._o protester_n be_v heretic_n because_o they_o condemn_v and_o contemn_v that_o church_n upon_o who_o authority_n they_o have_v believe_v christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n for_o they_o have_v receive_v christ_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n by_o the_o preach_n 101._o preach_n cap._n 2._o n._n 101._o and_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o church_n as_o you_o say_v cap._n 3._o n._n 33._o lin_v 10._o now_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v to_o they_o to_o firm_a and_o infallible_a as_o their_o christianity_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v rather_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n then_o believe_v any_o thing_n against_o they_o by_o who_o they_o believe_v christ_n this_o you_o teach_v pag._n 90_o lin_v 2._o why_o shall_v i_o not_o most_o diligent_o inquire_v what_o christ_n command_v of_o they_o the_o church_n of_o england_n before_o all_o other_o by_o who_o authority_n i_o be_v move_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n command_v any_o good_a thing_n can_v you_o f._n or_o k._n or_o whosoever_o you_o be_v better_o declare_v to_o i_o what_o he_o say_v who_o i_o will_v not_o have_v think_v to_o have_v be_v or_o to_o be_v if_o the_o belief_n thereof_o have_v be_v recommend_v to_o i_o by_o you_o &_o c_o sure_o if_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o and_o can_v not_o teach_v i_o any_o thing_n i_o will_v more_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o i_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n then_o that_o i_o shall_v learn_v any_o thing_n concern_v he_o from_o any_o other_o then_z they_o by_o who_o i_o believe_v he_o this_o be_v your_o discourse_n full_a of_o impiety_n because_o what_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o the_o whole_a christian_a catholic_n church_n you_o apply_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v false_a that_o any_o true_a christian_a believe_v in_o christ_n by_o rest_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o do_v this_o church_n if_o it_o make_v christian_n propose_v herself_o but_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o the_o irrefragable_a witness_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v impious_a that_o you_o will_v never_o have_v believe_v christ_n nor_o christianity_n if_o the_o belief_n thereof_o have_v be_v recommend_v to_o you_o by_o we_o that_o be_v by_o preacher_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o holy_a monk_n send_v you_o for_o that_o office_n from_o rome_n it_o be_v antichristian_a to_o profess_v that_o you_o will_v more_o easy_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n then_o learn_v any_o thing_n concern_v he_o from_o any_o other_o then_o they_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o who_o you_o believe_v he_o so_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v fall_v away_o from_o christ_n into_o infidelity_n you_o profess_v aforehand_o that_o you_o will_v fall_v away_o and_o become_v a_o infidel_n with_o she_o 34._o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o
say_n of_o s._n augustine_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v move_v i_o i_o will_v more_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o i_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v christ_n then_o that_o i_o shall_v learn_v any_o thing_n concern_v he_o from_o any_o other_o than_o they_o by_o who_o i_o believe_v he_o this_o profession_n i_o say_v though_o most_o evident_a truth_n can_v without_o impiety_n be_v apply_v to_o any_o church_n which_o be_v not_o indefectible_a and_o infallible_a in_o all_o her_o proposal_n it_o be_v evident_a truth_n because_o the_o proof_n must_v be_v to_o we_o more_o manifest_a and_o we_o sure_a of_o the_o truth_n there_o of_o then_o the_o thing_n prove_v thereby_o otherwise_o it_o be_v no_o proof_n as_o you_o say_v cap._n 6_o n._n 59_o in_o fine_a but_o the_o only_a proof_n the_o only_a motive_n and_o reason_n we_o have_v to_o believe_v christ_n that_o he_o live_v on_o earth_n and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o christian_a scripture_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o word_n and_o tradition_n as_o you_o often_o grant_v therefore_o as_o s._n 8._o cap._n 5._o n._n 64._o lin_v 8._o augustine_n say_v how_o can_v we_o have_v evidence_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o have_v not_o evidence_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o her_o proposal_n and_o if_o true_a christian_n be_v sure_a of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o of_o christ_n then_o according_a to_o reason_n they_o may_v soon_o disbelieve_v christ_n then_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o you_o protest_v against_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n that_o she_o be_v not_o free_a from_o damnable_a error_n in_o faith_n and_o damnable_a corruption_n in_o practice_n that_o church_n by_o who_o you_o have_v believe_v christ_n if_o you_o do_v true_o and_o christianly_o believe_v in_o he_o how_o then_o can_v you_o be_v christian_n or_o have_v any_o ground_a assurance_n of_o faith_n concern_v he_o you_o will_v say_v that_o you_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n not_o by_o this_o present_a catholic_a church_n but_o by_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n this_o be_v vain_a because_o you_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o former_a age_n and_o of_o what_o they_o believe_v and_o teach_v but_o by_o the_o word_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a nor_o do_v you_o hold_v the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n infallible_a medium_n cap._n 5._o n._n 91._o post_v medium_n yea_o you_o express_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o be_v present_o upon_o the_o apostle_n death_n cover_v with_o darkness_n and_o universal_a error_n how_o then_o be_v you_o not_o heretic_n and_o false_a christian_n who_o believe_v christ_n and_o christianity_n upon_o no_o other_o or_o better_a ground_n than_o your_o own_o fancy_n the_o nine_o conviction_n 35._o protester_n destroy_v by_o their_o doctrine_n the_o be_v &_o essence_n of_o the_o catho_n christian_n church_n but_o the_o doctrine_n destructive_a of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n be_v a_o damnable_a blasphemous_a heresy_n ergo_fw-la protester_n be_v heretic_n of_o the_o worse_a and_o more_o damnable_a sort_n you_o deny_v both_o proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n yet_o you_o teach_v principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v demonstrative_o clear_v against_o you_o the_o mayor_n be_v prove_v because_o you_o often_o teach_v and_o it_o be_v the_o main_n point_n of_o your_o religion_n that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a ●edio_fw-la catholic_a pag._n 291._o lin_v 9_o or_o c._n 5._o n._n 88_o in_o ●edio_fw-la church_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n to_o damnable_a error_n yea_o 12._o yea_o cap._n 5._o n._n 7._o cap._n 3._o n._n 36._o li._n 12._o to_o fundamental_a error_n in_o some_o kind_n but_o this_o doctrine_n do_v total_o and_o essential_o overthrow_v the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n for_o you_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o by_o essence_n the_o rock_n and_o ground_n c_o that_o be_v always_o the_o actual_a teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n so_o that_o they_o who_o take_v this_o from_o she_o take_v her_o essence_n from_o she_o ●un_v cap._n 5._o per_fw-la to_o ●un_v and_o essential_o destroy_v she_o be_v but_o he_o who_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n make_v the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n for_o you_o say_v a_o authority_n subject_a to_o error_n can_v be_v a_o firm_a and_o stable_a foundation_n a_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n ergo_fw-la they_o that_o make_v the_o church_n fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o some_o error_n in_o some_o proposal_n of_o faith_n destroy_v her_o essence_n hence_o your_o distinction_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o of_o a_o pure_a church_n free_a from_o error_n and_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a christian_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o not_o a_o pure_a unspotted_a church_n from_o all_o error_n this_o distinction_n i_o say_v by_o you_o repeat_v many_o hundred_o of_o time_n be_v vain_a for_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o impurity_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yea_o possibility_n to_o be_v impure_a and_o erroneous_a in_o any_o proposal_n of_o faith_n be_v against_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o the_o church_n the_o minor_a also_o you_o deny_v circamed_a see_n edit_n 6_o n._n 9_o circamed_a cap._n 2._o n._n 13._o lin_v 12._o if_o zelots_n have_v hold_v that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o no_o pure_a visible_a church_n but_o none_o at_o all_o sure_o they_o have_v say_v more_o than_o they_o can_v justify_v but_o yet_o you_o do_v not_o show_v nor_o can_v i_o discover_v any_o such_o vast_a absurdity_n or_o sacrilegious_a blasphemy_n in_o this_o assertion_n thus_o you_o and_o this_o fancy_n than_o do_v so_o occupy_v the_o short_a capacity_n of_o your_o brain_n that_o the_o contrary_a declaration_n which_o you_o make_v in_o your_o book_n be_v drive_v quite_o out_o of_o your_o mind_n pag._n 336._o lin_v 25._o into_o such_o a_o heresy_n which_o destroy_v essential_o christianity_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v fall_v it_o may_v be_v say_v more_o true_o to_o perish_v then_o if_o it_o fall_v only_o into_o some_o error_n of_o its_o own_o nature_n damnable_a for_o in_o that_o state_n all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o without_o exception_n all_o without_o mercy_n must_v perish_v for_o ever_o thus_o you_o teach_v that_o if_o the_o church_n perish_v essential_o and_o remain_v christian_n not_o in_o truth_n but_o only_o in_o name_n that_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o without_o exception_n all_o without_o mercy_n perish_v with_o it_o can_v any_o absurdity_n be_v more_o vast_a and_o full_a of_o horror_n than_o this_o you_o teach_v this_o immanity_n to_o be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o total_a destruction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o say_v that_o you_o can_v discover_v any_o such_o vast_a absurdity_n in_o that_o destructive_a doctrine_n so_o small_a a_o matter_n it_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o grant_v that_o all_o christian_n since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n perish_v everlasting_o 36._o be_v it_o not_o sacrilegious_a blasphemy_n to_o make_v christ_n a_o false_a prophet_n who_o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o be_v which_o promise_n do_v import_v as_o you_o acknowledge_v cap._n 3._o n._n 70_o that_o she_o shall_v always_o continue_v a_o true_a church_n and_o bring_v forth_o child_n unto_o god_n and_o send_v soul_n to_o heaven_n now_o they_o who_o contend_v that_o there_o be_v for_o many_o age_n no_o church_n make_v this_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v false_a therefore_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o most_o sacrilegious_a blasphemy_n as_o the_o maintainer_n of_o charity_n say_v and_o none_o will_v deny_v that_o have_v in_o he_o any_o spark_n of_o charity_n towards_o christ_n the_o conclusion_n 37._o and_o now_o give_v i_o leave_v courteous_a reader_n to_o make_v a_o end_n for_o what_o have_v be_v say_v may_n more_o than_o abundant_o suffice_v to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o man_n enterprise_n who_o will_v cut_v out_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n through_o the_o flint_n of_o heretical_a obstinacy_n if_o any_o think_v this_o can_v be_v perform_v against_o such_o a_o volume_n by_o a_o treatise_n so_o small_a as_o this_o be_v for_o bigness_n not_o comparable_a unto_o he_o let_v he_o examine_v comparative_o the_o strength_n the_o pith_n the_o argument_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o in_o this_o comparison_n the_o proverb_n will_v also_o be_v find_v true_a a_o cane_n non_fw-la magno_fw-la saepe_fw-la tenetur_fw-la aper_fw-la 38._o the_o crocodile_n that_o vast_a venomous_a serpent_n of_o nilus_n be_v conquer_v and_o make_v away_o by_o a_o little_a fish_n term_v ichneumon_a which_o watch_v a_o
the_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a christian_a catholic_n church_n be_v know_v which_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n though_o i_o can_v but_o presume_v the_o thing_n be_v to_o every_o consider_a man_n evident_a enough_o wherefore_o catholic_n and_o all_o true_a christian_n do_v not_o choose_v their_o church_n or_o religion_n by_o their_o own_o natural_a reason_n &_o and_o wit_n but_o tradition_n notorious_a and_o evident_a of_o itself_o perpetual_a universal_a uniform_a show_v they_o the_o church_n and_o with_o she_o and_o in_o she_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v for_o they_o choose_v ordain_v deliver_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n jesus_n bring_v by_o he_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n you_o see_v then_o that_o in_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o christian_a belief_n you_o have_v grant_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v desire_v and_o howsoever_o you_o be_v please_v to_o term_v we_o unconsider_v man_n yet_o we_o have_v consider_v the_o sequels_fw-fr of_o your_o assertion_n perchance_o more_o deep_o than_o you_o have_v do_v yourself_o that_o the_o assent_n to_o god_n word_n of_o christian_a save_v faith_n be_v not_o mere_a human_a moral_a and_o probable_a but_o divine_a infallible_a and_o certain_o unerring_a chap._n ii_o the_o contrary_a error_n cozen_v german_a to_o the_o refuted_a in_o the_o former_a chapter_n &_o consequent_a thereupon_o be_v often_o inculcate_v by_o you_o in_o your_o book_n that_o a_o infallible_a faith_n 6._o faith_n cap._n 6._o n._n 6._o be_v not_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n nor_o for_o our_o walk_n unto_o happiness_n through_o a_o world_n of_o opposition_n back_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n a_o weak_a probable_a and_o credible_a assurance_n that_o there_o be_v a_o heaven_n suffice_v though_o finem_fw-la though_o cap._n 1._o n._n 8._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la undiscernible_a from_o the_o belief_n we_o give_v to_o other_o human_a history_n it_o be_v enough_o man_n believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o mystery_n of_o faith_n 28._o faith_n cap._n 6._o n._n 5._o l._n 28._o as_o much_o as_o caesar_n commentary_n or_o the_o history_n of_o sallust_n that_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v nor_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v believe_v fine_a believe_v preface_n n._n 8._o in_o fine_a thing_n impossible_a in_o human_a reason_n fine_a reason_n cap._n 6._o n._n 7._o in_o fine_a that_o we_o shall_v believe_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n the_o truth_n whereof_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a with_o evidence_n proportionable_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o faith_n require_v of_o we_o this_o for_o any_o man_n to_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v unjust_a because_o to_o do_v it_o be_v impossible_a as_o sure_a as_o god_n be_v good_a he_o will_v not_o require_v impossibility_n of_o we_o but_o medium_n but_o cap._n 6._o n_o 7._o circa_fw-la medium_n infallible_a certainty_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o though_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o yet_o be_v not_o make_v to_o appear_v to_o we_o to_o be_v infallible_a certain_a be_v a_o impossibility_n these_o and_o the_o like_a nullifidian_n pardox_n you_o often_o utter_a and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v which_o be_v plausible_a and_o applaud_v by_o those_o s._n peter_n term_v unlearned_a and_o unstable_a head_n varro_n varro_n who_o now_o pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o gallant_a wit_n who_o life_n we_o may_v fear_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o levity_n and_o vanity_n of_o their_o faith_n nam_fw-la quae_fw-la venustas_fw-la hic_fw-la adest_fw-la gallantibus_fw-la quae_fw-la casta_fw-la vestis_fw-la these_o doctrine_n i_o say_v be_v welcome_a to_o such_o as_o groan_n under_o the_o 9_o the_o nam_fw-la vera_fw-la religio_fw-la omnino_fw-la sine_fw-la gravi_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la imper●o_fw-la intri_fw-la rectè_fw-la nuilo_fw-la pacto_fw-la potest_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred._n cap._n 9_o yoke_n of_o humble_a obedience_n to_o god_n word_n under_o christian_a duty_n of_o believe_a thing_n invisible_a the_o reveal_v manner_n whereof_o be_v incomprehensible_a to_o humane_a understanding_n who_o because_o they_o find_v difficulty_n to_o do_v it_o will_v not_o endeavour_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o raise_v their_o err_a and_o wander_a thought_n and_o stay_v they_o by_o firm_a and_o fix_a faith_n on_o high_a and_o heavenly_a object_n for_o as_o asconsione_n as_o ser._n 2._o the_o asconsione_n s._n leo_n say_v it_o be_v the_o vigour_n only_o of_o generous_a mind_n to_o believe_v without_o doubt_n what_o come_v not_o within_o sight_n and_o there_o to_o rest_v with_o our_o heart_n whither_o we_o can_v reach_v with_o our_o eye_n and_o because_o you_o accuse_v catholic_n that_o they_o require_v man_n to_o yield_v upon_o only_a probable_a &_o prudentiall_a ground_n prudentiall_a pag._n 79._o n._n 70._o upon_o prudentiall_a motive_n fallible_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n motive_n ground_n motive_n pag._n 79._o n._n 70._o upon_o prudentiall_a motive_n fallible_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n most_o certain_a assent_n to_o thing_n impossible_a in_o human_a reason_n that_o the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o slander_n may_v be_v make_v apparent_a i_o must_v brief_o declare_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n &_o together_o prove_v it_o which_o shall_v be_v of_o this_o your_o error_n the_o first_o conviction_n 2._o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o assent_n absolute_o infallible_a five_o thing_n concur_v all_o which_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o catholic_a divines_n be_v most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n 1._o the_o object_n with_o be_v doctrine_n reveal_v of_o god_n 2._o the_o motive_n and_o reason_n of_o believe_v which_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v who_o veracity_n be_v altogether_o infallible_a 3._o because_o we_o believe_v revelation_n not_o make_v immediate_o to_o ourselves_o but_o to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o be_v a_o proponent_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v a_o witness_v worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n a_o authority_n whereon_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v that_o those_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v deliver_v and_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o divine_a revelation_n this_o proponent_n and_o witness_n be_v the_o present_a catholic_a church_n deliver_v what_o she_o receive_v by_o full_a universal_a tradition_n from_o her_o ancestor_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n universal_a tradition_n now_o we_o hold_v tradition_n to_o be_v altogether_o as_o infallible_a as_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o the_o same_o reverence_n with_o the_o same_o submissive_a devotion_n of_o pious_a belief_n as_o scripture_n as_o you_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o do_v chap._n 2._o n._n 1._o 3._o four_o that_o a_o assent_n be_v infallible_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o thing_n believe_v be_v represent_v and_o propose_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o believer_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o may_v know_v the_o same_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o in_o believe_v it_o he_o can_v possible_o err_v for_o the_o manner_n of_o believe_v if_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o believer_n to_o be_v infallible_a though_o it_o be_v infallible_a in_o itself_o will_v not_o make_v he_o sure_a and_o infallible_a this_o condition_n be_v find_v in_o the_o assent_n of_o christian_a faith_n for_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v represent_v as_o clear_v by_o note_a and_o mark_v with_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a proof_n that_o be_v confirm_v with_o innumerable_a manifest_a miracle_n which_o the_o believer_n have_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n or_o else_o know_v they_o by_o the_o report_n of_o whole_a world_n of_o those_o that_o behold_v they_o by_o report_n so_o full_a constant_a &_o brim_a as_o it_o be_v equivalent_a to_o the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n these_o divine_a proof_n and_o mark_n evident_o show_v that_o the_o thing_n mark_v with_o they_o be_v under_o the_o special_a care_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n that_o he_o can_v but_o provide_v that_o the_o pious_a believer_n be_v not_o deceive_v about_o they_o 4._o hereby_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o christian_a manner_n of_o apprehend_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a &_o more_o sure_a and_o certain_a then_o any_o manner_n of_o natural_a representation_n and_o apprehension_n of_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v natural_a knowledge_n be_v either_o physical_a whereby_o we_o apprehend_v thing_n as_o true_a because_o represent_v as_o such_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n or_o metaphysical_a whereby_o we_o apprehend_v thing_n as_o true_a by_o the_o light_n of_o understanding_n which_o clear_o behold_v the_o necessary_a connexion_n the_o thing_n apprehend_v have_v with_o truth_n as_o in_o this_o proposition_n every_o whole_a thing_n be_v great_a than_o any_o single_a part_n thereof_o our_o understanding_n by_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o single_a word_n present_o without_o discourse_n see_v and_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o speech_n neither_o of_o these_o